Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n know_v scripture_n truth_n 7,532 5 5.8743 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A04774 Miscellanies of divinitie divided into three books, wherein is explained at large the estate of the soul in her origination, separation, particular judgement, and conduct to eternall blisse or torment. By Edvvard Kellet Doctour in Divinitie, and one of the canons of the Cathedrall Church of Exon. Kellett, Edward, 1583-1641. 1635 (1635) STC 14904; ESTC S106557 484,643 488

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

by_o he_o who_o be_v also_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d stander_n by_o who_o have_v smite_v and_o buffet_v he_o and_o call_v they_o by_o the_o charitable_a term_n of_o brethren_n who_o it_o have_v be_v fit_a to_o reprove_v it_o argue_v his_o plain_a sincerity_n speak_v of_o his_o superior_a second_o if_o s._n paul_n have_v speak_v by_o way_n of_o jest_n irrision_n or_o irony_n when_o he_o say_v i_o know_v not_o brethren_z that_o he_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n he_o may_v well_o have_v cease_v there_o but_o since_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o sacred_a text_n serious_o true_o and_o sad_o to_o confirm_v his_o nesciency_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mock_v with_o the_o divine_a verity_n with_o i_o it_o shall_v pass_v currant_n that_o he_o speak_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o his_o heart_n when_o he_o say_v he_o know_v he_o not_o to_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n the_o spirit_n never_o teach_v any_o inspire_v to_o apply_v scripture_n contrary_a to_o their_o knowledge_n nor_o to_o cite_v the_o sacred_a text_n of_o truth_n to_o prove_v a_o untruth_n three_o consider_v the_o antithest_n and_o opposition_n between_o the_o word_n in_o the_o five_o verse_n he_o say_v simple_o and_o direct_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o know_v not_o where_o his_o ignorance_n be_v the_o more_o serious_o profess_v by_o the_o opposition_n in_o the_o six_o verse_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o paul_n know_v that_o the_o one_o part_n be_v sadducee_n and_o the_o other_o pharisee_n as_o if_o the_o spirit_n have_v say_v paul_n indeed_o be_v ignorant_a who_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o know_v they_o be_v divide_v into_o faction_n the_o word_n but_o run_v with_o a_o singular_a emphasis_n to_o this_o point_n four_o by_o this_o exposition_n we_o shall_v cut_v off_o that_o objection_n which_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la use_v against_o s._n paul_n as_o if_o by_o this_o double_a deal_n he_o be_v a_o very_a timeserver_n in_o his_o word_n we_o maintain_v all_o to_o be_v do_v in_o solemn_a gravity_n and_o reality_n of_o truth_n five_o if_o s._n paul_n have_v speak_v ironical_o that_o he_o have_v not_o know_v the_o high_a priest_n when_o they_o know_v one_o a_o other_o how_o easy_o can_v the_o high_a priest_n have_v confute_v and_o confound_v he_o and_o lay_v lie_v and_o imposture_n to_o his_o charge_n but_o this_o he_o do_v not_o do_v therefore_o in_o likelihood_n s._n paul_n know_v he_o not_o last_o the_o objection_n for_o the_o former_a opinion_n be_v easy_o answer_v how_o can_v he_o be_v ignorant_a who_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n when_o he_o be_v breed_v up_o in_o their_o law_n and_o well_o acquaint_v and_o familiar_o in_o their_o synedrion_n and_o have_v be_v there_o when_o s._n stephen_n be_v condemn_v and_o when_o he_o get_v letter_n from_o the_o high_a priest_n a_o little_a before_o his_o conversion_n especial_o since_o he_o appeal_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n as_o to_o his_o witness_n act_v 22.5_o to_o the_o first_o point_n i_o confess_v he_o be_v breed_v up_o in_o their_o law_n and_o can_v not_o then_o in_o likelihood_n be_v ignorant_a who_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n or_o what_o be_v his_o name_n yet_o now_o he_o may_v be_v ignorant_a for_o s._n paul_n have_v be_v away_o from_o jerusalem_n a_o good_a while_n avoid_v the_o storm_n of_o persecution_n and_o high_a priest_n die_v as_o other_o man_n and_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v two_o high_a priest_n which_o be_v not_o of_o old_a and_o with_o one_o of_o they_o he_o may_v not_o be_v acquaint_v oh_o but_o he_o frequent_v the_o synedrion_n i_o confess_v that_o not_o only_o the_o witness_n lay_v down_o their_o clothes_n at_o a_o young_a man_n foot_n who_o name_n be_v saul_n act_v 7.58_o but_o that_o saul_n consent_v to_o the_o death_n of_o s._n stephen_n act_v 8.1_o and_o as_o certain_a that_o he_o as_o a_o principal_a agent_n receive_v letter_n from_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o all_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o elder_n to_o search_v out_o the_o christian_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o be_v punish_v act_v 22.5_o and_o so_o he_o must_v needs_o know_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o elder_n and_o they_o he_o and_o therefore_o in_o likelihood_n he_o be_v conversant_a sometime_o in_o their_o synedrion_n but_o i_o say_v as_o before_o this_o may_v not_o be_v that_o high_a priest_n who_o sit_v to_o condemn_v s._n stephen_n or_o to_o who_o s._n paul_n appeal_v as_o witness_v but_o the_o other_o high_a priest_n may_v sit_v at_o this_o time_n and_o on_o this_o day_n since_o now_o and_o then_o one_o sit_v now_o and_o then_o a_o other_o and_o sometime_o both_o of_o they_o and_o thus_o s._n paul_n may_v be_v ignorant_a who_o be_v his_o judge_n oh_o but_o he_o well_o know_v the_o high_a priest_n by_o his_o place_n and_o by_o his_o clothes_n i_o answer_v the_o jew_n be_v not_o now_o sit_v in_o their_o council-house_n but_o where_o the_o chief_a captain_n command_v they_o to_o appear_v act_v 22.30_o himself_o sit_v as_o the_o moderator_n in_o his_o own_o tribunal_n which_o he_o be_v not_o wont_a to_o do_v in_o their_o synedrion_n neither_o may_v the_o high_a priest_n take_v the_o proper_a vestment_n in_o such_o a_o place_n by_o which_o he_o may_v be_v know_v from_o other_o to_o close_v up_o all_o if_o nothing_o say_v before_o do_v satisfy_v thou_o but_o thou_o be_v confident_a that_o s._n paul_n do_v know_v the_o high_a priest_n though_o thou_o be_v better_a to_o adhere_v to_o the_o word_n yet_o have_v i_o find_v out_o a_o other_o way_n for_o the_o open_n of_o this_o point_n which_o have_v perplex_v many_o learned_a man_n observe_v therefore_o i_o pray_v thou_o these_o thing_n first_o that_o not_o only_o the_o high_a priest_n but_o all_o their_o council_n be_v summon_v to_o appear_v act_v 22.30_o and_o of_o the_o council_n each_o man_n have_v liberty_n to_o speak_v at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o at_o such_o public_a trial_n there_o be_v a_o great_a din_n murmur_n and_o muttering_n so_o that_o the_o speaker_n be_v not_o always_o discernible_a while_o many_o may_v speak_v at_o once_o and_o some_o loud_a than_o other_o second_o while_o s._n paul_n earnest_o behold_v not_o the_o high_a priest_n only_o but_o the_o council_n act_v 23.1_o cast_v his_o eye_n from_o one_o to_o another_o the_o high_a priest_n command_v he_o to_o be_v smite_v on_o the_o mouth_n these_o word_n s._n paul_n may_v hear_v and_o yet_o not_o know_v in_o such_o a_o confuse_a noise_n which_o of_o those_o his_o many_o judge_n speak_v they_o and_o in_o likelihood_n think_v that_o such_o a_o unjust_a sentence_n can_v not_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o high_a priest_n mouth_n but_o to_o the_o author_n of_o those_o word_n whosoever_o he_o be_v to_o that_o unjust_a judge_n s._n paul_n sharp_o and_o punctual_o reply_v god_n will_v judge_v thou_o thou_o paint_a wall_n but_o when_o s._n paul_n be_v inform_v that_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n himself_o he_o be_v sorry_a for_o his_o quick_a speech_n and_o say_v i_o know_v not_o brethren_z that_o he_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n so_o that_o if_o s._n paul_n have_v know_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o high_a priest_n he_o if_o they_o have_v be_v well_o acquaint_v the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o at_o this_o time_n of_o s._n paul_n trial_n which_o will_v never_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v yet_o here_o be_v now_o a_o new_a way_n as_o probable_a as_o any_o to_o excuse_v the_o apostle_n from_o dissimulation_n and_o from_o use_v the_o scripture_n as_o a_o cloak_n to_o it_o viz._n though_o s._n paul_n know_v the_o man_n to_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n yet_o he_o know_v not_o at_o first_o that_o it_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n who_o pronounce_v so_o unjust_a and_o furious_a a_o sentence_n but_o divers_a of_o the_o seventy_o two_o judge_n may_v be_v speak_v one_o to_o another_o and_o s._n paul_n may_v be_v mistake_v at_o first_o in_o the_o speaker_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o know_v not_o brethren_z it_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n that_o speak_v these_o word_n concern_v i_o and_o thus_o i_o hope_v this_o difficulty_n be_v clear_v i_o will_v only_o add_v this_o that_o divers_a ancient_a father_n from_o s._n paul_n example_n in_o this_o place_n prove_v his_o modesty_n moderation_n and_o undisturbed_a passion_n by_o his_o sudden_a wise_a settle_a answer_n and_o that_o i_o hold_v this_o paraphrase_n probable_a as_o if_o s._n paul_n have_v say_v if_o i_o have_v wit_v that_o it_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n who_o use_v those_o word_n though_o i_o will_v not_o have_v forbear_v other_o yet_o i_o will_v have_v forbear_v he_o since_o god_n have_v say_v thou_o shall_v not_o speak_z evil_a of_o the_o ruler_n of_o thy_o people_z but_o yet_o this_o man_n
to_o the_o first_o place_n of_o matth._n 13.35_o and_o say_v who_o ever_o deny_v but_o that_o some_o copy_n have_v be_v corrupt_v and_o in_o some_o of_o they_o some_o word_n foist_v in_o but_o all_o greek_a all_o latin_a copy_n with_o the_o arabic_a and_o syriack_n translation_n read_v abraham_n and_o not_o jacob_n whereas_o some_o copy_n be_v always_o perfect_a in_o that_o place_n of_o matthew_n now_o if_o you_o grant_v corruption_n in_o any_o point_n or_o title_n in_o all_o the_o greek_a and_o all_o the_o latin_a copy_n how_o will_v you_o prove_v any_o part_n or_o word_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v uncorrupt_a which_o raze_v up_o the_o very_a cornerstone_n of_o our_o faith_n mr_n beza_n again_o object_v that_o the_o name_n of_o jeremy_n be_v write_v for_o zacharie_n matth._n 27.9_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o jeremy_n write_v other_o thing_n which_o now_o we_o have_v not_o 2._o maccab._n 2.1_o and_o so_o do_v divers_a of_o the_o prophet_n and_o why_o may_v not_o this_o be_v then_o take_v from_o some_o of_o those_o work_n which_o be_v perish_v second_o s._n hierome_n say_v a_o jew_n bring_v he_o a_o apocryphal_a book_n of_o jeremy_n in_o which_o he_o find_v this_o testimony_n word_n for_o word_n and_o this_o book_n be_v call_v apocrypha_fw-la or_o occulta_fw-la jeremiae_n the_o apocryphal_o or_o hide_a writing_n of_o jeremy_n say_v erasmus_n on_o matth._n 27._o as_o what_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o janne_n and_o jambres_n 2._o tim._n 3.8_o and_o what_o s._n judas_n say_v of_o michael_n the_o archangel_n strive_v with_o the_o devil_n be_v think_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o book_n apocryphal_a so_o may_v this_o testimony_n be_v cite_v also_o out_o of_o jeremy_n apocryphal_o three_o erasmus_n suppose_v that_o zacharie_n have_v two_o name_n and_o be_v call_v both_o zacharie_n and_o jeremy_n and_o so_o no_o inconvenience_n follow_v four_o not_o only_o the_o syriack_n leave_v out_o the_o name_n of_o jeremy_n but_o even_o in_o augustine_n time_n the_o name_n of_o jeremy_n be_v not_o in_o many_o latin_a copy_n as_o augustine_n himself_o testify_v de_fw-la consensu_fw-la evangelistarum_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 7._o the_o ordinary_a gloss_n also_o say_v that_o in_o some_o edition_n it_o be_v only_o thus_o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o name_n of_o jeremy_n be_v leave_v unmentioned_a five_o augustine_n in_o the_o last_o recite_v place_n of_o he_o resolve_v that_o the_o divine_a providence_n purposely_o set_v down_o jeremy_n for_o zacharie_n and_o what_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v dictate_v s._n matthew_n do_v true_o write_v and_o one_o reason_n why_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n confound_v the_o name_n of_o jeremy_n and_o zacharie_n be_v this_o say_v augustine_n to_o insinuate_v that_o all_o the_o prophet_n write_v by_o one_o spirit_n and_o wonderful_o consent_v in_o one_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o singulorum_fw-la that_o quacunque_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la sp●itus_fw-la sanctus_n dixit_fw-la &_o singula_fw-la esse_fw-la omnium_fw-la &_o omne_fw-la singulorum_fw-la what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v by_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v appropriate_v unto_o any_o one_o but_o to_o all_o and_o every_o of_o they_o what_o be_v say_v by_o jeremy_n be_v as_o well_o zacharies_n as_o jeremies_n and_o what_o be_v say_v by_o zacharie_n be_v as_o well_o jeremies_n as_o zacharies_n god_n speak_v not_o by_o the_o mouth_n but_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a prophet_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v act._n 3.21_o and_o they_o have_v but_o one_o spirit_n to_o guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n the_o prophecy_n of_o amos_n be_v call_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n act_n 7.42_o and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o in_o divers_a place_n be_v call_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n scripture_n as_o john_n 5.39_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d search_v the_o scripture_n be_v also_o oftentimes_o call_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n the_o scripture_n as_o john_n 2.22_o they_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o word_n which_o jesus_n have_v say_v belief_n be_v to_o rest_v as_o well_o on_o his_o word_n only_o without_o scripture_n as_o on_o scripture_n though_o he_o have_v say_v nothing_o and_o the_o word_n scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v restrain_v only_o to_o that_o place_n of_o scripture_n before_o point_a at_o but_o to_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n write_v which_o they_o believe_v the_o scripture_n have_v conclude_v all_o under_o sin_n gal._n 3.22_o where_o not_o one_o single_a place_n only_o but_o either_o common_a place_n of_o that_o point_n or_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v a_o few_o word_n of_o a_o psalm_n of_o david_n be_v call_v by_o christ_n himself_o the_o law_n of_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v write_v in_o their_o law_n they_o hate_v i_o without_o a_o cause_n john_n 15.25_o which_o be_v only_o so_o write_v psal_n 35.19_o again_o he_o say_v to_o the_o jew_n john_n 10.34_o be_v it_o not_o write_v in_o your_o law_n i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n but_o it_o be_v write_v so_o only_o psal_n 83.6_o yea_o though_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n be_v write_v both_o isa_n 28.16_o and_o psal_n 118.22_o as_o also_o matth_n 21.42_o and_o act_v 4.12_o yet_o s._n peter_n reckon_v all_o but_o as_o one_o all_z but_o one_o scripture_n though_o several_o write_v by_o these_o four_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o 1._o pet._n 2.6_o in_o the_o singular_a number_n he_o mention_v scripture_n as_o if_o what_o one_o write_v the_o rest_n write_v s._n peter_n say_v not_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n with_o reference_n to_o one_o spirit_n indite_v or_o inspire_v though_o that_o may_v have_v also_o be_v true_o speak_v but_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n with_o relation_n to_o the_o unity_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o penman_n last_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n be_v these_o matth._n 27.9_o then_o be_v fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n say_v and_o they_o take_v the_o thirty_o piece_n of_o silver_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d effatum_fw-la jeremiae_n dicentis_fw-la that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o jeremy_n say_v etc._n etc._n now_o jeremiae_n may_v say_v it_o speak_v it_o dictate_v it_o which_o be_v most_o true_a and_o be_v all_o that_o s._n matthew_n say_v who_o by_o the_o spirit_n may_v also_o know_v that_o jeremy_n do_v teach_v preach_v prophesy_v and_o utter_v these_o word_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o and_o after_o all_o this_o zacharie_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n may_v write_v transcribe_v and_o insert_v those_o word_n of_o jeremy_n into_o his_o own_o prophecy_n which_o s._n matthew_n deni_v not_o as_o baruch_n write_v divers_a thing_n which_o he_o have_v hear_v from_o jeremy_n as_o agur_n collect_v some_o proverb_n of_o solomon_n again_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o jeremy_n as_o a_o prophet_n do_v speak_v 36.2_o speak_v jerem._n 36.2_o he_o himself_o or_o baruch_n shall_v write_v much_o less_o present_o since_o there_o be_v many_o year_n between_o jeremy_n his_o speak_v and_o his_o writing_n for_o enoch_n prophesy_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 14._o verse_n of_o the_o epist_n of_o s._n judas_n but_o he_o prophesy_v say_v etc._n etc._n as_o it_o be_v there_o write_v for_o writing_n be_v none_o till_o god_n set_v the_o copy_n unto_o moses_n by_o write_v the_o law_n in_o the_o table_n on_o the_o mount_n again_o s._n paul_n act._n 24.35_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n how_o he_o say_v it_o be_v more_o bless_a to_o give_v then_o to_o receive_v yet_o none_o of_o the_o evangelist_n record_v such_o word_n but_o this_o may_v the_o apostle_n relate_v unto_o s._n paul_n or_o by_o divine_a inspiration_n he_o may_v know_v that_o christ_n speak_v they_o or_o they_o may_v be_v part_n of_o the_o word_n which_o christ_n himself_o speak_v unto_o s._n paul_n for_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n that_o they_o be_v write_v s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n be_v command_v to_o conceal_v and_o not_o to_o write_v the_o word_n of_o the_o seven_o thunder_n revel_v 10.4_o if_o he_o have_v whole_o conceal_v such_o a_o thing_n we_o can_v not_o know_v it_o he_o speak_v it_o but_o write_v it_o not_o jeremy_n may_v speak_v this_o and_o not_o write_v it_o or_o write_v it_o and_o not_o speak_v it_o any_o of_o these_o answer_n be_v better_a then_o to_o incline_v to_o beza_n that_o the_o text_n be_v erroneous_a or_o patch_v up_o with_o a_o false_a addition_n or_o to_o erasmus_n on_o matth._n 27._o intimate_v there_o be_v lapsus_fw-la memoriae_fw-la in_o evangelistis_fw-la howsoever_o he_o qualifi_v it_o that_o if_o there_o be_v memoriae_fw-la lapsus_fw-la in_fw-la nomine_fw-la duntaxat_fw-la he_o
maintain_v that_o adam_n representation_n of_o we_o and_o his_o obedience_n shall_v have_v do_v we_o equal_a good_a to_o our_o resist_n of_o the_o first_o temptation_n more_o may_v pertinent_o be_v say_v of_o this_o matter_n but_o beside_o the_o precedent_a tediousness_n of_o it_o ludovicus_n vives_z aurem_fw-la vellit_fw-la endeavour_v to_o restrain_v such_o speculation_n to_o modest_a bound_n thus_o he_o say_v on_o augustine_n de_fw-fr civit._n 13.1_o of_o thing_n which_o may_v or_o may_v not_o have_v happen_v to_o man_n if_o adam_n have_v not_o fall_v humanas_fw-la fall_v quid_fw-la factum_fw-la sit_fw-la magno_fw-la nostro_fw-la malo_fw-la nemo_fw-la ignorat_fw-la quid_fw-la fuisset_fw-la nescio_fw-la a_o ipsi_fw-la adam_n ostensum_fw-la fuit_fw-la quantò_fw-la minùs_fw-la nobis_fw-la misellis_n nam_fw-la quid_fw-la prodest_fw-la uti_fw-la conjecturis_fw-la in_fw-la re_fw-la quae_fw-la conjecturas_fw-la omnes_fw-la superat_fw-la humanas_fw-la what_o fall_v out_o to_o our_o great_a harm_n no_o man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o shall_v have_v befall_v i_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v reveal_v to_o adam_n himself_o how_o much_o less_o to_o we_o poor_a wretch_n for_o what_o avail_v it_o to_o use_v conjecture_n in_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o all_o humane_a conjecture_n but_o vives_z himself_o be_v to_o blame_v first_o for_o his_o nesciencie_n or_o timorousness_n as_o if_o adam_n know_v not_o what_o estate_n he_o and_o he_o shall_v have_v have_v if_o he_o have_v persevere_v in_o innocency_n the_o ignorance_n of_o a_o point_n so_o near_o concern_v he_o have_v argue_v imperfection_n which_o the_o fullness_n of_o knowledge_n in_o which_o he_o be_v create_v do_v clear_o dispel_v for_o if_o god_n say_v to_o the_o corrupt_a world_n deut._n 30.19_o i_o call_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o record_v this_o day_n against_o you_o that_o i_o have_v set_v before_o you_o life_n and_o death_n can_v uncorrupt_a adam_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o life_n that_o be_v set_v before_o he_o or_o do_v adam_n understand_v the_o misery_n and_o punishment_n the_o ort_n and_o effect_n of_o morte_fw-la morieris_fw-la express_o threaten_v against_o he_o in_o a_o future_a contingent_a estate_n and_o can_v he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o his_o present_a condition_n of_o bliss_n and_o certain_a bliss_n to_o be_v increase_v upon_o his_o obedience_n do_v he_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o beast_n and_o other_o creature_n can_v he_o know_v the_o strange_a production_n of_o eve_n can_v he_o prophetical_o intimate_v the_o strict_a union_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o church_n by_o his_o own_o conjunction_n with_o eve_n and_o be_v it_o not_o show_v unto_o he_o what_o state_n he_o shall_v have_v have_v and_o we_o in_o he_o second_o though_o these_o thing_n be_v tax_v of_o nicety_n yet_o the_o impartial_a reader_n overview_v this_o book_n perhaps_o will_v say_v it_o be_v profitable_a and_o delightful_a to_o problematize_v even_o upon_o this_o very_a point_n but_o other_o matter_n invite_v i_o hence_o forward_o to_o they_o and_o therefore_o have_v clear_v that_o it_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o adam_n of_o only_a adam_n and_o not_o of_o eve_n for_o which_o death_n be_v appoint_v let_v we_o proceed_v to_o examine_v which_o and_o what_o this_o sin_n of_o adam_n be_v which_o be_v next_o and_o necessary_o to_o be_v handle_v o_o most_o glorious_a creator_n who_o do_v make_v we_o in_o the_o first_o adam_n excellent_a creature_n and_o will_v have_v make_v we_o better_o if_o he_o who_o undertake_v for_o we_o have_v not_o bring_v upon_o we_o death_n and_o destruction_n grant_v i_o beseech_v thou_o for_o thy_o mercy_n sake_n in_o the_o merit_n and_o mediation_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a saviour_n that_o we_o may_v recover_v our_o lose_a image_n and_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o he_o here_o and_o reign_v in_o life_n with_o he_o hereafter_o chap._n four_o 1._o adam_n perfection_n in_o innocence_n our_o imperfection_n after_o his_o fall_n contrary_a to_o he_o both_o in_o understanding_n and_o will_n and_o in_o the_o part_n concupiscible_a and_o irascible_a 2._o adam_n have_v other_o law_n give_v he_o but_o one_o above_o all_o and_o one_o only_o concern_v posterity_n 3._o what_o this_o law_n be_v adam_n know_v the_o danger_n to_o himself_o and_o he_o of_o spring_n the_o first_o sin_n be_v against_o this_o law_n 4._o eve_n sin_v before_o how_o she_o sin_v the_o same_o and_o not_o the_o same_o sin_n with_o adam_n 5._o zeno_n the_o stoic_n and_o jovinian_n confute_v sin_n be_v not_o equal_o sinful_a 6_o adam_n sin_v far_o more_o and_o worse_a then_o eve_n 7_o this_o sin_n of_o adam_n be_v not_o uxoriousnesse_n as_o scotus_n maintain_v but_o disobedience_n or_o pride_n the_o branch_n of_o adam_n sin_n 1_o lombard_n say_v b._n say_v quibusdam_fw-la videtur_fw-la quòd_fw-la adam_n ante_fw-la lapsum_fw-la non_fw-la habuerit_fw-la virtutem_fw-la lomb._n send_v 2._o do_v 29._o light_v b._n some_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o adam_n before_o the_o fall_n have_v no_o virtue_n he_o have_v not_o justice_n say_v they_o because_o he_o despise_v god_n commandment_n nor_o prudence_n because_o he_o provide_v not_o for_o himself_o nor_o temperance_n for_o his_o appetite_n extend_v to_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n nor_o fortitude_n for_o he_o yield_v to_o suggestion_n we_o answer_v say_v lombard_n he_o have_v not_o these_o virtue_n when_o he_o sin_v but_o before_o and_o in_o sin_v lose_v they_o for_o augustine_n in_o a_o certain_a homily_n say_v adam_n be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n arm_v with_o shamefastness_n compose_v with_o temperance_n splendent_a with_o charity_n otherwhere_o he_o say_v adam_n be_v endue_v with_o a_o spiritual_a mind_n ambrose_n say_v aetheream_fw-la say_v beatissimus_fw-la erat_fw-la &_o auram_fw-la carpebat_fw-la aetheream_fw-la he_o be_v most_o happy_a and_o lead_v a_o heavenly_a life_n and_o add_v a_o good_a observation_n praevaricatus_fw-la observation_n quando_fw-la adam_n solus_fw-la erat_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la praevaricatus_fw-la when_o adam_n be_v alone_o he_o transgress_v not_o which_o may_v teach_v we_o to_o fear_v the_o enticement_n of_o company_n this_o point_n deserve_v not_o to_o be_v so_o speedy_o cast_v off_o and_o therefore_o attend_v this_o further_a enlargement_n many_o very_o many_o precept_n be_v grave_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o adam_n and_o every_o branch_n of_o the_o natural_a law_n be_v there_o write_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n at_o his_o creation_n nor_o be_v he_o ignorant_a what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o omit_v in_o any_o business_n eccl._n 17.1_o the_o lord_n create_v man_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o verse_n 2._o he_o change_v the_o singular_a into_o the_o plural_a he_o give_v they_o power_n over_o the_o thing_n therein_o and_o verse_n 3_o he_o endue_v they_o with_o strength_n by_o themselves_o and_o make_v they_o according_a to_o his_o image_n and_o then_o follow_v a_o excellent_a description_n of_o their_o gift_n i_o conceive_v and_o explain_v the_o matter_n thus_o four_o faculty_n he_o have_v and_o we_o have_v of_o our_o soul_n two_o superior_a two_o inferior_a the_o two_o superior_a be_v understanding_n and_o will_n the_o two_o inferior_a the_o part_n irascible_a and_o part_v concupiscible_a first_o the_o object_n of_o his_o understanding_n be_v truth_n the_o perfection_n of_o it_o be_v knowledge_n but_o now_o as_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n decay_v this_o truth_n be_v darken_v with_o ignorance_n 1_o corinth_n 2.14_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o nor_o can_v know_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n eph._n 4.18_o their_o understanding_n be_v darken_v and_o their_o heart_n be_v blind_a psal_n 49.20_o man_n in_o honour_n understand_v not_o as_o adam_n be_v in_o innocence_n he_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o apostle_n ephes_n 4.23_o 24._o say_v be_v renew_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o mind_n new_o we_o be_v once_o in_o adam_n and_o in_o he_o also_o we_o grow_v old_a we_o be_v command_v to_o be_v renew_v as_o new_a as_o once_o we_o be_v and_o put_v on_o that_o new_a man_n which_o be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n of_o truth_n therefore_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v create_v in_o truth_n you_o have_v the_o object_n truth_n the_o perfection_n be_v knowledge_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la 17.7_o god_n fill_v they_o with_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n and_o this_o be_v second_v by_o the_o apostle_n colos_n 3.10_o the_o new_a man_n be_v renew_v in_o knowledge_n after_o the_o image_n of_o he_o that_o create_v he_o renovation_n necessary_o impli_v precedent_a oldnes_n and_o oldnes_n precedent_a newness_n of_o knowledge_n in_o the_o first_o adam_n second_o the_o object_n of_o man_n will_n be_v and_o be_v goodness_n the_o perfection_n love_n in_o the_o decay_a estate_n the_o will_n be_v infect_v with_o vanity_n genes_n 6.5_o every_o imagination_n of_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v only_o evil_a continual_o ephes_n 4.17_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o vanity_n of_o our_o
who_o make_v unlearned_a man_n bishop_n as_o many_o as_o serve_v his_o turn_n and_o more_o will_v have_v make_v if_o more_o need_n have_v be_v bishop_n ostensionale_n bishop_n pompatico_v &_o ostensionale_n pompaticall_a and_o only_o for_o show_v as_o lampridius_n say_v of_o perseus_n his_o soldier_n namely_o titular_a bishop_n void_a of_o learning_n void_a of_o church_n void_a of_o good_a conscience_n and_o mercenary_a parasite_n concern_v our_o nationall_n church_n till_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n may_v be_v celebrate_v both_o pastor_n and_o people_n of_o england_n be_v to_o obey_v her_o decree_n injunction_n article_n homily_n and_o our_o approve_a last_o best_a translation_n above_o coverdales_n tindals_n or_o any_o private_a one_o therefore_o obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n as_o they_o that_o must_v give_v account_n heb._n 13.17_o and_o you_o be_v to_o follow_v their_o faith_n ver_fw-la 7._o 6._o the_o devil_n bring_v not_o a_o more_o dangerous_a paradox_n into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n this_o thousand_o year_n than_o this_o that_o every_o one_o illiterate_a man_n or_o woman_n at_o their_o pleasure_n may_v judge_v of_o scripture_n and_o interpret_v scripture_n and_o believe_v their_o own_o fancy_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o call_v the_o evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o contradict_v they_o though_o with_o truth_n they_o esteem_v as_o the_o not_o convince_a nor_o clear_v of_o their_o conscience_n so_o that_o nationall_n counsel_n be_v of_o no_o esteem_n general_n counsel_n not_o of_o much_o the_o sheep_n will_v not_o hear_v the_o pastors_n voice_n but_o to_o their_o pleasure_n censure_v they_o for_o all_o may_v err_v the_o spirit_n from_o heaven_n as_o they_o suppose_v do_v as_o well_o dictate_v the_o sense_n to_o they_o as_o it_o do_v sometime_o the_o word_n to_o the_o holy_a penman_n thereof_o let_v such_o seduce_v once_o know_v they_o have_v the_o cart_n without_o the_o horse_n and_o horseman_n whereas_o the_o prophet_n eliah_n be_v call_v and_o other_o church-governors_n may_v be_v call_v the_o chariot_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o horseman_n thereof_o 2._o king_n 2.12_o they_o have_v the_o word_n with_o the_o eunuch_n but_o want_v both_o philip_n to_o be_v their_o guide_n and_o the_o humbleness_n of_o the_o eunuch_n who_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v instruct_v act._n 8.30_o though_o they_o have_v the_o letter_n yet_o they_o may_v miss_v the_o true_a literal_a sense_n which_o be_v not_o in_o divers_a place_n to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o word_n only_o or_o principal_o as_o in_o proverbial_a parabolicall_a and_o mysterious_a sentence_n the_o literal_a sense_n be_v the_o hard_a to_o find_v spiritu_fw-la find_v simplicem_fw-la sequentes_fw-la literam_fw-la occidunt_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la qui_fw-la totus_fw-la sentitur_fw-la in_o spiritu_fw-la they_o that_o follow_v the_o bare_a letter_n do_v kill_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v whole_o perceive_v in_o the_o spirit_n say_v hierome_n of_o some_o man_n on_o matt._n 26.21_o presumptuous_a and_o illiterate_a expositor_n be_v like_o the_o carrier_n or_o post_n haste_v between_o prince_n have_v letter_n of_o truth_n in_o their_o packet_n but_o seal_v up_o so_o that_o they_o can_v see_v nor_o know_v they_o while_o their_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o leasing_n false_a rumour_n and_o lie_v they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o self-conceit_n and_o pride_n these_o man_n little_o think_v that_o they_o who_o wrest_v some_o hard_a place_n in_o s._n paul_n as_o they_o do_v also_o the_o other_o scripture_n wrest_v they_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n 2._o pet._n 3.16_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o those_o who_o wrest_v easy_a place_n these_o dream_v not_o that_o condere_fw-la that_o ejusdem_fw-la penè_fw-la auteritatis_fw-la est_fw-la interpretari_fw-la cujus_fw-la condere_fw-la it_o belong_v almost_o to_o the_o same_o authority_n to_o interpret_v and_o to_o make_v that_o they_o be_v to_o rest_v on_o the_o general_n commission_n give_v to_o the_o priest_n teach_v all_o nation_n therefore_o other_o must_v learn_v that_o the_o priest_n lip_n must_v preserve_v knowledge_n and_o the_o people_n must_v fetch_v the_o law_n from_o their_o mouth_n that_o a_o implicit_a belief_n in_o depth_n beyond_o their_o capacity_n be_v better_a than_o adventurous_a dare_a to_o take_v from_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n that_o divine_a sense_n which_o it_o have_v and_o to_o fasten_v their_o own_o false_a sense_n upon_o it_o tertullian_n say_v 38._o say_v tantum_n veritati_fw-la obstrepit_fw-la adulter_fw-la sensus_fw-la quantum_fw-la corruptor_n stylus_fw-la de_fw-fr prescript_n advers._fw-la hętet_fw-la cap._n 17._o &_o 38._o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v deprave_v as_o well_o by_o a_o false_a gloss_n as_o by_o corrupt_v the_o text_n hierome_n thus_o 1_o thus_o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr in_o verbis_fw-la evangelium_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o sensu_fw-la non_fw-la in_o superficie_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o medulla_n none_o in_o sermonum_fw-la foliis_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o radice_fw-la rationis_fw-la comment_fw-fr in_o galat._n 1_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o sense_n not_o in_o the_o outside_n but_o in_o the_o marrow_n not_o in_o the_o leaf_n of_o speech_n but_o in_o the_o root_n of_o reason_n irenaeus_n 2.25_o cadere_fw-la 2.25_o melius_fw-la est_fw-la nihil_fw-la omnino_fw-la scientem_fw-la perseverare_fw-la in_o dilectione_n dei_fw-la quae_fw-la hominem_fw-la vivificat_fw-la nec_fw-la aliud_fw-la inquirere_fw-la ad_fw-la scientiam_fw-la nisi_fw-la jesum_fw-la christum_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la crucifixum_fw-la quàm_fw-la per_fw-la quaestionum_fw-la subtilitates_fw-la &_o multiloquium_fw-la in_fw-la impietates_fw-la cadere_fw-la it_o be_v better_a for_o the_o ignorant_a to_o continue_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o quicken_v a_o man_n and_o to_o seek_v no_o other_o knowledge_n but_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n crucify_v for_o we_o then_o by_o subtlety_n of_o question_n and_o much_o talk_v to_o fall_v into_o impiety_n and_o augustine_n serm._n 20._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apost_n scientia_fw-la apost_n melior_fw-la est_fw-la fidelis_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la quàm_fw-la temeraria_fw-la scientia_fw-la a_o faithful_a ignorance_n be_v better_a than_o a_o rash_a knowledge_n again_o s._n hierome_n ad_fw-la demetriadem_fw-la speak_v of_o unlearned_a man_n suâ_fw-la man_n quum_fw-la loqui_fw-la nesciunt_fw-la tacere_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la docéntque_fw-la scripturas_fw-la quas_fw-la non_fw-la intelligunt_fw-la priùs_fw-la imperitorum_fw-la magistri_fw-la quàm_fw-la doctorum_fw-la discipuli_fw-la bonum_fw-la est_fw-la obedire_fw-la majoribus_fw-la parere_fw-la praesectis_fw-la &_o post_fw-la regulas_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la suae_fw-la tramitem_fw-la ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la discere_fw-la nec_fw-la praeceptore_fw-la uti_fw-la pessimo_fw-la scilicet_fw-la praesumptione_n suâ_fw-la know_v not_o how_o to_o speak_v they_o can_v hold_v their_o peace_n but_o will_v needs_o teach_v the_o scripture_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o and_o be_v master_n of_o the_o ignorant_a before_o they_o be_v disciple_n of_o the_o learned_a it_o be_v good_a to_o obey_v our_o elder_n to_o submit_v to_o those_o that_o be_v set_v over_o we_o and_o next_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o learn_v of_o other_o how_o to_o live_v and_o not_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o our_o own_o presumption_n the_o worst_a guide_n of_o all_o other_o excellent_a be_v the_o counsel_n of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n to_o these_o fanatical_a giddy-brained_a private_a spirit_n you_o sheep_n presume_v not_o to_o lead_v your_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n if_o a_o jew_n a_o turk_n a_o devil_n convince_v thy_o conscience_n thou_o must_v follow_v it_o shall_v the_o governor_n of_o thy_o soul_n have_v no_o other_o power_n over_o thou_o than_o jew_n turk_n or_o devil_n or_o be_v the_o ministry_n ordain_v in_o vain_a in_o vain_a indeed_o it_o be_v ordain_v if_o every_o one_o be_v his_o own_o judge_n or_o a_o peremptory_a judge_n of_o his_o guide_n if_o great_a learned_a man_n may_v be_v deceive_v may_v not_o the_o ignorant_a man_n much_o more_o i_o dare_v true_o avouch_v that_o the_o unlearned_a single-languaged-interpreting-lay-man_n have_v all_o the_o fault_n whatsoever_o learned_a man_n have_v and_o some_o other_o especial_o such_o as_o be_v the_o offspring_n of_o ignorance_n that_o wise_a historian_n philip_n de_fw-fr commines_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n 4._o chap._n reckon_v it_o as_o a_o unseemly_a thing_n to_o reason_n of_o divinity_n before_o a_o doctor_n the_o world_n be_v turn_v topsi-turvey_a the_o great_a and_o most_o learned_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v confront_v by_o a_o cobbler_n yea_o confound_a if_o we_o will_v believe_v that_o monster_n of_o man_n that_o incarnate_a devil_n martin_n marre-prelate_n who_o thus_o sing_v of_o his_o idol_n who_o make_v the_o godly_a cobbler_n cliff_n for_o to_o confound_v his_o grace_n i_o warrant_v you_o the_o spirit_n the_o private_a spirit_n by_o which_o the_o fool_n presume_v that_o he_o be_v guide_v sleidan_n comment_n 22._o fol._n 266._o say_v it_o be_v one_o of_o
essugiet_fw-la 15._o qui_fw-la dissolvit_fw-la pactum_fw-la numquid_fw-la essugiet_fw-la he_o that_o break_v his_o covenant_n shall_v he_o escape_v unpunished_a s._n hierome_n true_o thus_o conclude_v est_fw-la conclude_v etiam_fw-la inter_fw-la host_n servanda_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la even_o among_o enemy_n faith_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v add_v a_o divine_a caution_n which_o comprise_v our_o cause_n insidias_fw-la cause_n non_fw-la considerandum_fw-la cvi_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la quem_fw-la juraveris_fw-la multò_fw-la enim_fw-la fidelior_fw-la est_fw-la ille_fw-la qui_fw-la propter_fw-la nomen_fw-la dei_fw-la tibi_fw-la credidit_fw-la &_o deceptus_fw-la est_fw-la te_fw-la qui_fw-la per_fw-la occasionem_fw-la divinae_fw-la majestatis_fw-la host_n tuo_fw-la imò_fw-la jam_fw-la amico_fw-la es_fw-la molitus_fw-la insidias_fw-la it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v consider_v to_o who_o but_o by_o who_o thou_o have_v swear_v for_o he_o be_v much_o more_o faithful_a who_o for_o the_o name_n of_o god_n believe_v thou_o and_o be_v deceive_v than_o thou_o who_o do_v circumvent_v thy_o enemy_n yea_o now_o thy_o friend_n by_o abuse_v god_n sacred_a majesty_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o s._n hierome_n speak_v of_o oath_n between_o king_n or_o such_o as_o have_v be_v enemy_n but_o the_o reason_n reach_v and_o extend_v themselves_o even_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o private_a man_n lie_v fraud_n or_o any_o collusion_n by_o mental_a reservation_n or_o verbal_a equivocation_n be_v whole_o to_o be_v seclude_v and_o abhor_v when_o a_o oath_n be_v take_v prudent_a silence_n in_o diverse_a case_n be_v admit_v yea_o but_o if_o a_o examinate_v be_v adjure_v shall_v he_o then_o be_v silent_a still_o silent_a i_o answer_v i_o will_v have_v he_o imitate_v our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o say_v nothing_o at_o divers_a time_n insomuch_o that_o the_o governor_n marvel_v great_o matth._n 27.14_o yet_o when_o the_o high_a priest_n say_v 26.63_o say_v matth._n 26.63_o i_o adjure_v thou_o by_o the_o live_a god_n that_o thou_o tell_v we_o whether_o thou_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o he_o know_v it_o will_v cost_v he_o his_o life_n he_o conceal_v not_o the_o truth_n and_o in_o such_o a_o adjuration_n upon_o religion_n the_o examinate_a be_v bind_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o to_o witness_v a_o good_a confession_n though_o to_o the_o expense_n of_o his_o blood_n 286._o blood_n contra_fw-la marcionem_fw-la lib._n 4._o pag._n 286._o tertullian_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o scrupulous_a in_o lesser_a matter_n say_v est_fw-la say_v justa_n &_o digna_fw-la praescriptio_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la omni_fw-la quaestione_fw-la ad_fw-la propositum_fw-la interrogationis_fw-la pertinere_fw-la debere_fw-la sensum_fw-la responsionis_fw-la aliud_fw-la consulenti_fw-la aliud_fw-la respondere_fw-la dementis_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v a_o just_a and_o worthy_a rule_n that_o in_o every_o question_n the_o answer_n shall_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o same_o sense_n &_o purpose_n to_o which_o the_o interrogation_n be_v make_v to_o answer_v of_o one_o thing_n when_o he_o be_v ask_v of_o another_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o mad_a man_n again_o convenit_fw-la again_o sensus_fw-la responsionis_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la aliud_fw-la dirigendus_fw-la quàm_fw-la ad_fw-la propositum_fw-la interrogationis_fw-la quò_fw-la magìs_fw-la absit_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la quod_fw-la nè_fw-la homini_fw-la quidem_fw-la convenit_fw-la the_o sense_n of_o the_o answer_n be_v not_o to_o be_v direct_v to_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o that_o which_o be_v propound_v in_o the_o interrogation_n so_o far_o be_v that_o from_o christ_n which_o beseem_v not_o a_o mere_a man_n so_o he_o i_o answer_v first_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o question_n in_o divinity_n to_o instruct_v the_o soul_n and_o there_o it_o be_v sin_n to_o delude_v the_o simple_a questionist_n second_o he_o speak_v of_o question_n extra_fw-la jactum_fw-la teli_fw-la cùm_fw-la ary_n murum_fw-la non_fw-la percusserit_fw-la of_o question_n not_o concern_v great_a danger_n life_n or_o limb_n which_o do_v somewhat_o vary_v the_o case_n three_o a_o homonymous_a answer_n of_o verbal_a equivocation_n do_v both_o correspond_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o question_n which_o be_v all_o that_o tertullian_n require_v and_o impli_v also_o a_o second_o sense_n which_o may_v be_v understand_v by_o a_o intelligent_a hearer_n which_o in_o a_o mental_a reservation_n be_v impossible_a to_o be_v unlock_v open_v and_o clear_v except_o by_o a_o hand_n divine_a four_o tertullian_n can_v be_v think_v to_o condemn_v verbal_a equivocation_n the_o dainty_a use_n whereof_o make_v almost_o as_o great_a a_o difference_n between_o a_o wise_a man_n and_o a_o idiot_n as_o between_o a_o idiot_n and_o a_o beast_n and_o none_o but_o wise_a man_n can_v use_v it_o with_o comfort_n and_o delight_n and_o the_o wise_a man_n be_v as_o their_o heart_n by_o divers_a thought_n be_v deep_o than_o the_o fool_n so_o their_o word_n be_v more_o abstruse_a bivious_a multivious_a what_o writing_n under_o heaven_n of_o finite_a man_n have_v or_o can_v have_v such_o multiplicity_n of_o meaning_n as_o be_v in_o scripture_n comprise_v under_o the_o word_n dictate_v by_o a_o infinite_a spirit_n who_o whole_a entire_a exact_a depth_n the_o mere_a creature_n never_o know_v full_o and_o perfect_o if_o i_o may_v have_v my_o desire_n quoth_v s._n augustine_n i_o have_v rather_o speak_v in_o word_n who_o divers_a sense_n may_v give_v content_a to_o divers_a people_n of_o different_a apprehension_n then_o in_o word_n that_o can_v have_v one_o sense_n only_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o will_v commend_v unto_o this_o examinate_a be_v to_o give_v fair_a language_n to_o his_o judge_n let_v he_o not_o be_v bold_a and_o malapert_a nor_o use_v clamorous_a opposition_n let_v not_o the_o ignorant_a syllogize_v in_o barbara_n darii_n ferio_n or_o mar_v his_o cause_n by_o ill_a handle_n yet_o if_o he_o be_v unmovable_o constant_a let_v he_o say_v i_o can_v dispute_v but_o i_o can_v die_v let_v he_o not_o provoke_v the_o judge_n by_o word_n or_o action_n ill_o advise_v eulalia_n be_v a_o girl_n about_o 12_o year_n old_a do_v spit_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o he_o may_v the_o rather_o condemn_v she_o the_o answer_n of_o hannah_n 1._o samuel_n 1.15_o etc._n etc._n when_o she_o be_v in_o bitterness_n of_o soul_n to_o the_o misjudgeing_a and_o uncharitable_o zealous_a priest_n eli_n be_v as_o a_o sweet_a incense_n in_o the_o nostril_n of_o god_n and_o be_v a_o good_a lesson_n for_o all_o to_o take_v out_o when_o they_o be_v call_v before_o the_o magistrate_n though_o hard_a measure_n be_v offer_v how_o long_o will_v thou_o be_v drunken_a quoth_v he_o put_v away_o thy_o wine_n from_o thou_o and_o she_o answer_v no_o my_o lord_n i_o be_o a_o woman_n of_o a_o sorrowful_a spirit_n i_o have_v drink_v neither_o wine_n nor_o strong_a drink_n etc._n etc._n count_v not_o thy_o handmaid_n for_o a_o daughter_n of_o belial_n the_o manner_n of_o answer_v may_v be_v sinful_a though_o the_o matter_n be_v good_a froward_a behaviour_n never_o benefit_v a_o cause_n but_o a_o gentle_a answer_n pacifi_v wrath_n proverb_n 15.1_o taunt_a recrimination_n argue_v a_o distemper_a spirit_n in_o the_o gall_n of_o bitterness_n how_o humble_o do_v our_o bless_a saviour_n behave_v himself_o under_o the_o hand_n of_o unjust_a judge_n how_o constant_o zealous_o and_o bold_o because_o they_o be_v inspire_v immediate_o from_o god_n do_v the_o apostle_n act._n 4._o plead_v for_o themselves_o yet_o without_o malapertnesse_n or_o irreverence_n s._n paul_n his_o speech_n to_o the_o high_a priest_n exact_v a_o large_a discourse_n acts._n 23.5_o paul_n say_v i_o know_v not_o brethren_z that_o he_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n some_o think_v that_o s._n paul_n know_v ananias_n to_o be_v high_a priest_n when_o he_o call_v he_o paint_a wall_n i_o answer_v if_o so_o it_o be_v this_o be_v no_o fit_a example_n for_o sauciness_n to_o be_v use_v in_o our_o time_n towards_o magistrate_n for_o first_o if_o s._n paul_n do_v know_v he_o he_o may_v speak_v though_o not_o as_o a_o prophet_n yet_o illuminate_v and_o inspire_v from_o god_n which_o now_o be_v not_o in_o use_n second_o he_o may_v speak_v as_o a_o prophet_n foredivining_a a_o evil_a end_n to_o ananias_n as_o indeed_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v say_v pauli_n say_v homil._n 6._o de_fw-fr laudibus_fw-la pauli_n chrysostom_n if_o any_o one_o of_o they_o who_o now_o revile_v magistracy_n have_v the_o spirit_n prophetical_a denounce_v contingent_a future_a thing_n which_o yet_o end_n in_o accomplishment_n i_o will_v not_o call_v he_o a_o saucy_a presumptuous_a fellow_n three_o though_o divers_a learned_a man_n think_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o he_o speak_v by_o a_o irony_n when_o he_o say_v i_o know_v not_o yet_o i_o persuade_v myself_o that_o s._n paul_n in_o truth_n know_v not_o when_o he_o speak_v ananias_n to_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n for_o these_o reason_n first_o because_o he_o seem_v to_o put_v on_o the_o spirit_n of_o mildness_n towards_o they_o that_o stand_v
good_a or_o god_n see_v that_o it_o be_v good_a as_o he_o do_v at_o all_o and_o every_o of_o the_o other_o five_o day_n creation_n be_v it_o therefore_o not_o good_a yes_o very_o for_o gen._n 1.31_o god_n see_v every_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v make_v and_o behold_v it_o be_v very_o good_a john_n 14.16_o etc._n etc._n the_o comforter_n shall_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v because_o it_o see_v he_o not_o neither_o know_v he_o but_o you_o know_v he_o for_o he_o dwell_v with_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o and_o verse_n 26._o the_o comforter_n shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n therefore_o he_o shall_v teach_v they_o to_o write_v true_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o write_v false_o while_o he_o dwell_v with_o they_o and_o in_o they_o as_o he_o do_v when_o they_o write_v inspiration_n be_v ordain_v as_o a_o cause_n and_o as_o a_o mean_n of_o right_a conceive_n conceive_v or_o apprehension_n be_v appoint_v as_o a_o cause_n and_o a_o mean_n of_o right_a expression_n expression_n be_v either_o by_o word_n or_o writing_n many_o word_n be_v prophetical_o and_o most_o divine_o speak_v which_o be_v not_o write_v not_o so_o many_o be_v write_v as_o be_v first_o speak_v the_o vocal_a expression_n be_v more_o transient_a and_o transitory_a perhaps_o concern_v some_o few_o and_o those_o only_o of_o those_o time_n the_o expression_n permanent_a and_o by_o writing_n be_v and_o be_v directory_n to_o mankind_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n inspiration_n apprehension_n and_o much_o expression_n by_o voice_n be_v all_o as_o mean_n to_o this_o main_a end_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o scripture_n shall_v the_o mean_n be_v certain_a unerring_a and_o inerrable_a and_o shall_v the_o end_n be_v dubious_a crooked_a and_o err_a the_o perfect_a use_n of_o the_o right_a mean_n lead_v on_o infallible_o to_o a_o undeceive_n and_o exact_a end_n if_o the_o divine_a penman_n can_v not_o err_v or_o be_v mislead_v in_o the_o former_a which_o sometimes_o vanish_v leave_v no_o footstep_n behind_o they_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o they_o shall_v err_v in_o writing_n which_o be_v the_o masterpiece_n of_o that_o divine_a work_n last_v for_o ever_o the_o absolute_a square_n and_o judge_n and_o canon_n of_o all_o man_n thought_n word_n and_o deed_n unless_o you_o say_v god_n have_v less_o care_n to_o preserve_v from_o corruption_n divine_a record_v file_v up_o on_o eviternitie_n and_o necessary_a at_o all_o time_n for_o all_o person_n in_o all_o place_n as_o the_o scripture_n now_o be_v than_o he_o have_v of_o inspiration_n which_o end_v only_o in_o the_o apprehension_n if_o they_o be_v not_o express_v or_o turn_v into_o air_n and_o vanish_v almost_o with_o the_o breath_n if_o they_o be_v only_o speak_v nor_o let_v any_o man_n say_v that_o writing_n be_v further_o remove_v from_o the_o divine_a operation_n than_o inspiration_n be_v and_o so_o more_o subject_a to_o error_n for_o it_o shall_v appear_v ere_o long_o that_o the_o same_o spirit_n which_o begin_v by_o inspiration_n sit_v still_o move_v on_o the_o water_n not_o leave_v his_o own_o work_n till_o there_o be_v a_o perfect_a production_n till_o the_o end_n be_v accomplish_v and_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v write_v in_o word_n and_o letter_n of_o truth_n so_o that_o not_o one_o jota_n or_o tittle_n have_v any_o error_n yea_o let_v i_o go_v one_o step_n further_o and_o say_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n do_v dictate_v to_o their_o scribe_n actuary_n or_o secretary_n not_o only_o not_o themselves_o but_o not_o their_o notary_n can_v err_v and_o yet_o i_o have_v read_v of_o two_o mad_a story_n cross_v to_o my_o opinion_n the_o one_o in_o sixtus_n senensis_n bibliothecae_fw-la sanctae_fw-la 2._o pag._n 120._o on_o the_o name_n tertius_fw-la who_o record_v out_o of_o diodorus_n bishop_n of_o tarsus_n that_o this_o tertius_fw-la be_v no_o excellent_a speaker_n nor_o writer_n make_v the_o obscure_a epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o roman_n to_o be_v more_o obscure_a while_o he_o labour_v to_o express_v s._n paul_n thought_n and_o sense_n by_o more_o confuse_a and_o unabsolute_a sentence_n and_o transpose_v explication_n as_o if_o s._n paul_n can_v not_o write_v sufficient_o himself_o though_o he_o say_v in_o humbleness_n rudis_fw-la sermone_fw-la sum_fw-la i_o be_o rude_a in_o speech_n 2._o cor._n 11.6_o yet_o be_v he_o powerful_a in_o writing_n 2._o cor._n 10.10_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o diverse_o most_o sufficient_a scribe_n by_o he_o as_o if_o he_o will_v permit_v the_o write_n of_o so_o divine_a super-divine_a a_o epistle_n to_o a_o ignaro_n a_o silly_a fellow_n as_o if_o tertius_fw-la himself_o write_v not_o this_o epistle_n in_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v by_o divine_a authority_n or_o as_o cajetan_n think_v these_o word_n in_o the_o lord_n be_v add_v to_o show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o write_v it_o as_o a_o hireling_n which_o sense_n be_v make_v good_a by_o some_o authority_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o punctation_n as_o if_o the_o spirit_n who_o inspire_v paul_n dictate_v rule_v not_o the_o hand_n of_o tertius_fw-la writing_n as_o if_o s._n paul_n will_v make_v so_o blockheaded_n a_o disciple_n as_o tertius_n be_v feign_v to_o be_v to_o be_v his_o scribe_n and_o that_o in_o his_o most_o majestical_a and_o obscure_a epistle_n or_o if_o tertius_n be_v so_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v think_v worthy_a to_o be_v iconii_n episcopus_fw-la and_o have_v that_o extraordinary_a grace_n to_o be_v crown_v with_o martyrdom_n as_o ecclesiastical_a history_n record_v of_o he_o as_o if_o s._n peter_n who_o paul_n withstand_v for_o a_o small_a matter_n to_o the_o face_n gal._n 2.11_o when_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v in_o all_o s._n paul_n epistle_n some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v will_v have_v commend_v his_o fellow-apostle_n wisdom_n as_o he_o do_v 2._o pet._n 3.15_o and_o not_o rather_o have_v find_v fault_n with_o his_o folly_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o writing_n if_o not_o with_o the_o matter_n also_o if_o tertius_n have_v be_v so_o absurd_a as_o diodorus_n imagine_v especial_o see_v s._n peter_n say_v that_o the_o unlearned_a and_o unstable_a wrest_v some_o of_o those_o writing_n unto_o their_o own_o destruction_n which_o in_o all_o likelihood_n shall_v just_o rather_o swallow_v up_o s._n paul_n for_o his_o carelessness_n of_o indite_v and_o tertius_fw-la for_o his_o supineness_n or_o rather_o blasphemous_a forgery_n of_o divine_a truth_n by_o mis-writing_n they_o if_o any_o fault_n can_v have_v be_v true_o impute_v to_o either_o of_o they_o but_o of_o this_o we_o shall_v speak_v by_o god_n help_n more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o section_n save_o one_o the_o second_o mad_a story_n follow_v because_o some_o be_v wont_a to_o forge_v epistle_n in_o s._n paul_n name_n as_o be_v apparent_a 2._o thess_n 2.2_o where_o he_o beseech_v they_o not_o to_o be_v shake_v in_o mind_n or_o to_o be_v trouble_v neither_o by_o spirit_n nor_o by_o word_n nor_o by_o letter_n as_o from_o we_o therefore_o he_o always_o subscribe_v his_o own_o name_n to_o all_o his_o epistle_n doctores_fw-la epistle_n ubicunque_fw-la sciebat_fw-la falsos_fw-la adesse_fw-la doctores_fw-la wheresoever_o he_o know_v that_o there_o be_v false_a teacher_n say_v hierom_n on_o gal._n 6.11_o on_o which_o place_n he_o also_o relate_v that_o a_o very_a learned_a man_n of_o those_o time_n say_v s._n paul_n be_v a_o hebrew_n know_v not_o greek_a letter_n and_o because_o necessity_n require_v that_o he_o shall_v subscribe_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o the_o epistle_n exprimebat_fw-la epistle_n contra_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la curvos_fw-la tramite_n literarum_fw-la vix_fw-la magnis_fw-la apicibus_fw-la exprimebat_fw-la he_o write_v though_o in_o ill-shaped_a unhandsome_a very_o great_a letter_n show_v this_o testimony_n of_o a_o kind_a affection_n that_o he_o will_v endeavour_v to_o do_v for_o the_o galatian_n what_o indeed_o he_o can_v not_o do_v whereby_o he_o conclude_v that_o s._n paul_n can_v not_o write_v greek_a at_o least_o not_o in_o a_o legible_a good_a hand_n s._n hierom_n wonder_v at_o the_o ridiculousnesse_n of_o his_o exposition_n as_o well_o he_o may_v because_o the_o apostle_n use_v to_o subscribe_v to_o divers_a of_o his_o epistle_n and_o here_o he_o write_v this_o whole_a epistle_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o yet_o s._n hieroms_n exposition_n be_v almost_o as_o force_v as_o the_o former_a exaratus_fw-la former_a grandibus_fw-la paulus_n literis_fw-la scripsit_fw-la quia_fw-la sensus_fw-la erat_fw-la grandis_fw-la in_o literis_fw-la &_o spiritu_fw-la dei_fw-la vivi_fw-la non_fw-la atrameuto_fw-la &_o calamo_fw-la fuerat_fw-la exaratus_fw-la s._n paul_n say_v he_o write_v in_o large_a long_a character_n or_o letter_n because_o the_o sense_n be_v great_a in_o the_o word_n and_o be_v write_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o
either_o of_o these_o way_n be_v better_a than_o that_o of_o canus_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a know_v that_o though_o himself_o do_v kill_v isaac_n yet_o god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n unto_o abraham_n matth._n 3.9_o be_v able_a to_o raise_v up_o isaac_n even_o from_o the_o dead_a heb._n 11.19_o and_o in_o hope_n or_o full_a assurance_n thereof_o may_v say_v i_o and_o the_o lad_n will_v return_v and_o yet_o intend_v faithful_o to_o sacrifice_v his_o son_n and_o who_o know_v but_o he_o may_v be_v divine_o and_o extraordinary_o assure_v that_o his_o child_n shall_v return_v with_o he_o the_o three_o objection_n consist_v of_o these_o parcel_n 1._o pet._n 5.12_o by_o silvanus_n a_o faithful_a brother_n unto_o you_o as_o i_o suppose_v 2._o cor._n 11.5_o i_o suppose_v i_o be_v not_o a_o whit_n behind_o the_o very_o chief_a apostle_n in_o both_o place_n be_v use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d computo_fw-la supputo_fw-la existimo_fw-la say_v the_o vulgat_fw-la i_o suppose_v 1._o cor._n 7.40_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o think_v i_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n joh._n 21.25_o there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o jesus_n do_v the_o which_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v write_v i_o suppose_v that_o even_o the_o world_n itself_o can_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n that_o shall_v be_v write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d arbitror_fw-la i_o opine_n think_v or_o suppose_v from_o which_o or_o the_o like_a place_n the_o objection_n thus_o arise_v opinion_n be_v conversant_a about_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v changeable_a and_o be_v only_o of_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o soul_n busy_v about_o contingent_n and_o be_v a_o tremble_a pendulous_a shake_v and_o uncertain_a habit_n circa_fw-la complexa_fw-la upon_o probable_a reason_n incline_v to_o one_o side_n yet_o fear_v or_o doubt_v the_o contradictory_n for_o opinion_n be_v frame_v on_o likelihood_n as_o knowledge_n be_v upon_o truth_n where_o opinion_n or_o supposal_n be_v there_o be_v not_o certain_a knowledge_n but_o our_o apostle_n do_v think_v or_o suppose_v therefore_o they_o have_v not_o immediate_a divine_a revelation_n or_o certainty_n in_o the_o point_v suppose_v and_o therefore_o write_v somewhat_o which_o they_o know_v not_o i_o answer_v to_o each_o of_o these_o apostle_n in_o particular_a and_o first_o to_o s._n peter_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o doubt_n and_o uncertainty_n what_o be_v to_o be_v think_v concern_v silvanus_n divers_a say_v he_o speak_v modest_o of_o he_o as_o the_o apostolical_a man_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v of_o themselves_o s._n augustine_n tract_n 37._o in_o joan._n aver_v that_o under_o those_o word_n be_v couch_v a_o asseveration_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v to_o a_o stubborn_a servant_n thou_o do_v contemn_v i_o consider_v i_o suppose_v i_o be_o thy_o master_n where_o the_o seem_a supposal_n make_v he_o neither_o to_o be_v nor_o seem_v to_o be_v ever_o a_o whit_n the_o less_o his_o master_n but_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o reveal_v unto_o s._n peter_n full_o what_o the_o heart_n of_o silvanus_n be_v or_o be_v like_a to_o be_v leave_v he_o to_o suppose_v and_o according_a to_o the_o supposal_n of_o his_o soul_n do_v dictate_v unto_o s._n peter_n what_o the_o bless_a spirit_n know_v better_a than_o s._n peter_n these_o word_n the_o supposal_n of_o the_o apostle_n infer_v not_o a_o supposal_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o spirit_n be_v most_o certain_a when_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v dubious_a the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v represent_v peter_n and_o in_o peter_n person_n which_o may_v be_v subject_a to_o a_o supposal_n and_o yet_o divine_o inspire_v to_o know_v certain_o what_o he_o write_v namely_o to_o know_v this_o that_o he_o do_v suppose_v and_o that_o upon_o good_a motive_n whereas_o s._n paul_n say_v 2._o cor._n 11.5_o i_o suppose_v i_o be_v not_o a_o whit_n behind_o the_o very_o chief_a apostle_n and_o 1._o cor._n 7.40_o i_o think_v i_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n he_o speak_v not_o so_o much_o doubt_o as_o humble_o to_o use_v diminuent_fw-la and_o spare_a phrase_n concern_v once_o self_n be_v lawful_a 2._o cor._n 11.23_o i_o speak_v as_o a_o fool_n say_v s._n paul_n yet_o there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o dissimilitude_n between_o a_o fool_n and_o he_o as_o between_o any_o i_o think_v then_o breathe_v ephes_n 3.8_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unto_o i_o who_o be_o less_o than_o the_o least_o of_o all_o saint_n be_v this_o grace_n give_v that_o i_o shall_v preach_v among_o the_o gentile_n the_o unsearchable_a riches_n of_o christ_n no_o man_n have_v the_o like_a privilege_n in_o every_o degree_n as_o he_o have_v in_o this_o s._n peter_n be_v doctor_n judaeorum_fw-la the_o doctor_n of_o the_o jew_n s._n paul_n doctor_n gentium_fw-la the_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n yet_o no_o man_n can_v speak_v more_o modest_o then_o s._n paul_n do_v of_o himself_o less_o than_o the_o least_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v much_o but_o less_o than_o the_o least_o of_o all_o saint_n be_v the_o depth_n the_o heart_n the_o soul_n of_o humility_n which_o yet_o be_v further_o evidence_v in_o that_o he_o say_v not_o this_o grace_n be_v give_v when_o he_o be_v a_o persecuter_n and_o so_o indeed_o worse_o than_o any_o saint_n yea_o almost_o worse_o than_o any_o man_n but_o to_o i_o even_o now_o when_o i_o be_o call_v now_o when_o i_o be_o turn_v to_o i_o now_o less_o than_o the_o least_o of_o all_o saint_n be_v this_o grace_n give_v less_o than_o the_o least_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n which_o admit_v not_o a_o comparative_a above_o a_o superlative_a contrary_a to_o common_a sense_n contrary_a to_o the_o literal_a truth_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o for_o he_o be_v a_o choose_a vessel_n a_o chief_a apostle_n few_o if_o any_o more_o chief_a though_o he_o shall_v boast_v more_o of_o his_o authority_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a 2._o cor._n 10.8_o no_o whit_n inferior_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o very_o chief_a apostle_n 2._o cor._n 12.11_o a_o minister_n of_o christ_n more_o than_o other_o 2._o cor._n 11.23_o now_o though_o s._n paul_n use_v terminis_fw-la diminuentibus_fw-la and_o speak_v spare_o and_o modest_o in_o some_o place_n concern_v himself_o yet_o otherwhere_o he_o reveal_v the_o whole_a truth_n he_o know_v the_o certainty_n of_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v not_o less_o than_o the_o least_o that_o he_o be_v not_o as_o a_o fool_n and_o when_o he_o say_v i_o suppose_v or_o i_o think_v he_o do_v know_v dum_fw-la minus_fw-la dicit_fw-la majus_fw-la innuit_fw-la while_o he_o speak_v the_o less_o he_o intimate_v the_o more_o he_o be_v never_o a_o trumpeter_n of_o his_o own_o worth_n but_o when_o he_o be_v urge_v unto_o it_o by_o opposition_n concern_v the_o place_n of_o s._n john_n thus_o i_o answer_v the_o apostle_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o use_v a_o hyperbole_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o oriental_a idiotism_n and_o perchance_o aim_v at_o the_o word_n gen._n 13.6_o the_o land_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v abraham_n and_o lot_n that_o they_o may_v dwell_v together_o or_o at_o the_o place_n of_o amos_n 7.10_o the_o land_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v all_o his_o word_n as_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o the_o curious_a heinsius_n he_o also_o here_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n to_o write_v i_o suppose_v or_o i_o think_v that_o even_o the_o world_n can_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n as_o for_o other_o reason_n to_o we_o unknown_a so_o perhaps_o because_o both_o the_o spirit_n will_v qualify_v the_o hyperbole_n and_o speak_v within_o truth_n which_o be_v allow_v rather_o than_o beyond_o truth_n which_o be_v disallowable_a i_o suppose_v rather_o than_o i_o know_v second_o i_o answer_v more_o punctual_o if_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v leave_v s._n paul_n nescient_fw-la whether_o he_o be_v rapt_v in_o body_n yea_o or_o no_o and_o paul_n do_v know_v his_o own_o nesciencie_n 2._o cor._n 12.2_o why_o may_v not_o the_o same_o spirit_n leave_v s._n paul_n s._n peter_n s._n john_n in_o supposal_n and_o yet_o no_o inconvenience_n arise_v thencefrom_o since_o they_o perfect_o know_v that_o they_o do_v suppose_v this_o be_v the_o disciple_n which_o testify_v of_o these_o thing_n and_o write_v these_o thing_n and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o testimony_n be_v true_a john_n 21.24_o as_o s._n john_n say_v of_o himself_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n no_o man_n ever_o say_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o holy_a penman_n mention_v or_o treat_v of_o they_o understand_v perfect_o invest_v with_o all_o their_o circumstance_n for_o they_o speak_v and_o write_v of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o other_o
thought_n be_v in_o my_o heart_n the_o like_a i_o say_v of_o all_o and_o every_o of_o they_o psal_n 39.2_o i_o be_v dumb_a with_o silence_n i_o hold_v my_o peace_n even_o from_o good_a and_o my_o sorrow_n be_v stir_v and_o vers_fw-la 3._o my_o heart_n be_v hot_a within_o i_o while_o i_o be_v muse_v the_o fire_n burn_v then_o speak_v i_o with_o my_o tongue_n and_o vers_fw-la 4._o lord_n make_v i_o to_o know_v my_o end_n from_o whence_o appear_v that_o david_n be_v premeditate_v as_o other_o people_n do_v and_o at_o the_o last_o as_o other_o man_n his_o thought_n break_v forth_o the_o similitude_n be_v take_v from_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n which_o be_v for_o a_o while_n suppress_v grow_v great_a or_o from_o fire_n which_o be_v smother_v or_o half_o quench_v with_o water_n upon_o recovery_n of_o its_o strength_n grow_v far_o more_o violent_a the_o answer_n be_v that_o david_n relate_v what_o course_n he_o take_v when_o he_o can_v not_o exonerate_v and_o alleviate_v his_o soul_n by_o conference_n with_o man_n who_o way_n he_o like_v not_o he_o pour_v out_o his_o complaint_n and_o prayer_n unto_o god_n so_o musculus_fw-la and_o this_o no_o doubt_n do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n stir_v he_o up_o to_o do_v it_o please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o make_v those_o thought_n of_o david_n which_o before_o be_v pure_a and_o divine_a yet_o private_a now_o to_o be_v divine_a public_a and_o canonical_a again_o that_o they_o may_v conceive_v and_o understand_v by_o the_o spirit_n a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v have_v to_o be_v write_v i_o deny_v not_o and_o on_o such_o thing_n they_o may_v muse_v yet_o i_o conjecture_v that_o what_o they_o write_v in_o holy_a scripture_n they_o study_v not_o beforehand_o the_o spirit_n have_v no_o need_n of_o man_n study_n or_o learning_n and_o i_o do_v remove_v from_o every_o part_n of_o it_o all_o humane_a premeditation_n and_o maintain_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v frame_v both_o matter_n and_o word_n as_o by_o god_n grace_n shall_v anon_o appear_v pro_fw-la re_fw-la nata_fw-la as_o occasion_n offer_v itself_o one_o chief_a reason_n may_v be_v this_o that_o nature_n which_o be_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n have_v great_a care_n of_o great_a matter_n and_o less_o of_o least_o and_o equal_a care_n of_o thing_n equal_a if_o the_o apostolical_a and_o evangelicall_n writing_n be_v not_o consideratis_fw-la considerandis_fw-la weigh_v one_o thing_n with_o a_o other_o of_o more_o esteem_n than_o their_o word_n be_v yet_o let_v they_o go_v as_o equivalent_a then_o christ_n will_v have_v as_o much_o care_n of_o their_o writing_n as_o of_o their_o speak_n but_o their_o speech_n be_v without_o premeditation_n and_o be_v command_v so_o to_o be_v therefore_o all_o their_o writing_n matth._n 10.19_o take_v no_o thought_n how_o or_o what_o you_o shall_v speak_v you_o see_v both_o the_o matter_n and_o manner_n be_v not_o to_o be_v from_o they_o for_o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o father_n which_o speak_v in_o you_o vers_n 20._o not_o they_o there_o be_v the_o negative_a but_o the_o spirit_n there_o be_v the_o positive_a likewise_o mark_v 13.11_o take_v no_o thought_n beforehand_o neither_o do_v you_o premeditate_v a_o absolute_a inhibition_n and_o it_o have_v be_v a_o great_a sin_n to_o transgress_v it_o and_o a_o distrust_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o like_a i_o say_v concern_v all_o their_o writing_n they_o may_v have_v indeed_o in_o their_o meditation_n beforehand_o divers_a of_o those_o thing_n which_o afterward_o they_o write_v but_o when_o they_o think_v on_o they_o they_o know_v not_o they_o shall_v write_v they_o and_o when_o they_o do_v write_v they_o write_v they_o not_o as_o copy_n or_o extract_n of_o former_a conceit_n out_o of_o the_o womb_n of_o their_o own_o memory_n but_o as_o fresh_o and_o new_o inspire_v apprehend_v indict_v and_o dictate_v unto_o they_o there_o be_v one_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n proceed_v from_o principle_n know_v by_o the_o natural_a light_n of_o the_o intellect_n as_o arithmetic_n geometry_n etc._n etc._n other_o proceed_v out_o of_o principle_n know_v by_o light_n of_o a_o high_a knowledge_n as_o perspective_n from_o the_o principle_n evince_v by_o geometry_n and_o music_n from_o principle_n know_v by_o arithmetic_n so_o be_v the_o scripture_n believe_v by_o a_o high_a light_n even_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n say_v aquin._n part_n 1._o quaest_n 1._o art_n 2._o and_o not_o believe_v only_o but_o the_o matter_n and_o manner_n and_o word_n proceed_v from_o a_o divine_a understanding_n then_o humane_a conceit_n can_v reach_v unto_o and_o be_v write_v by_o a_o high_a and_o better_a hand_n than_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n all_o be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v even_o the_o lead_n of_o their_o hand_n while_o they_o write_v that_o they_o can_v not_o err_v cornelius_n cornelii_n à_fw-la lapide_fw-la on_o 2._o tim._n 3.16_o thus_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o dictate_v all_o scripture_n after_o one_o manner_n the_o law_n and_o the_o prophecy_n be_v reveal_v and_o dictate_v to_o a_o word_n the_o history_n and_o moral_a exercitation_n which_o before_o by_o sight_n hear_v read_v or_o meditation_n the_o holy_a writer_n have_v learn_v there_o be_v no_o necessity_n to_o be_v inspire_v or_o dictate_v from_o the_o spirit_n since_o they_o know_v they_o already_o so_o john_n 19.35_o he_o that_o see_v it_o bare_a record_n and_o luk._n 1.3_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o i_o also_o have_v have_v perfect_a understanding_n of_o all_o thing_n from_o the_o very_a first_o to_o write_v unto_o thou_o in_o order_n then_o do_v he_o mince_v modify_v and_o qualify_v his_o former_a say_n in_o this_o manner_n but_o the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v dictate_v even_o the_o latter_a also_o first_o because_o aberrarent_fw-la because_o astitit_fw-la scribentibus_fw-la nè_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o puncto_fw-la à_fw-la veritate_fw-la aberrarent_fw-la he_o be_v present_a while_o they_o write_v that_o they_o can_v not_o go_v one_o jot_n from_o the_o truth_n second_o because_o it_o stir_v they_o up_o and_o suggest_v that_o they_o shall_v write_v this_o rather_o than_o that_o sanctus_n that_o conceptum_fw-la ergò_fw-la &_o memoriam_fw-la corum_fw-la quae_fw-la sciebant_fw-la non_fw-la iis_fw-la ingessit_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n therefore_o the_o conception_n and_o remembrance_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o know_v the_o spirit_n do_v not_o inspire_v into_o they_o three_o say_v he_o the_o spirit_n do_v order_n direct_v and_o methodize_v all_o their_o conceit_n that_o they_o may_v put_v this_o in_o the_o first_o that_o in_o the_o second_o another_z in_o the_o three_o place_n in_o which_o word_n of_o his_o three_o thing_n deserve_v censure_n even_o the_o strict_a censure_n of_o the_o inquisition_n first_o that_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o dictate_v all_o scripture_n after_o one_o manner_n i_o answer_v then_o all_o be_v not_o of_o a_o like_a dignity_n that_o which_o be_v after_o the_o divine_a manner_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v best_o that_o wherein_o there_o be_v a_o medley_n of_o divine_a and_o humane_a knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n be_v of_o a_o inferior_a sort_n but_o this_o may_v not_o be_v grant_v for_o all_o scripture_n be_v of_o divine_a inspiration_n excellent_o say_v doctor_n estius_n on_o 2._o tim._n 3.16_o right_o and_o most_o true_o from_o hence_o do_v we_o conclude_v that_o all_o the_o sacred_a canonical_a scripture_n be_v write_v by_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n not_o in_o that_o manner_n say_v i_o that_o he_o leave_v the_o penman_n to_o their_o own_o memory_n and_o knowledge_n which_o as_o humane_a be_v weak_a and_o imperfect_a but_o scribente_fw-la but_o ità_fw-la nimirum_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la sententiae_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o verba_fw-la singula_fw-la &_o verborum_fw-la ordo_fw-la ac_fw-la tota_fw-la dispositio_fw-la sit_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la tanquam_fw-la per_fw-la semetipsum_fw-la loquente_fw-la aut_fw-la scribente_fw-la so_o that_o not_o only_o the_o sentence_n but_o every_o word_n and_o the_o order_n placing_z and_o the_o whole_a dispose_n of_o the_o word_n be_v from_o god_n as_o speak_v or_o write_v by_o himself_o but_o god_n i_o dare_v say_v have_v no_o need_n of_o their_o memory_n nor_o his_o writing_n or_o speech_n of_o their_o hear_n read_v sight_n or_o premeditation_n second_o he_o be_v to_o be_v tax_v for_o say_v there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o thing_n moral_a and_o historical_a shall_v be_v inspire_v i_o say_v there_o be_v a_o necessity_n that_o history_n and_o morality_n shall_v be_v inspire_v if_o they_o be_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o sacred_a writ_n otherwise_o this_o knowledge_n and_o writing_n be_v only_a parcel_n of_o humane_a learning_n though_o s._n john_n bare_a record_n to_o what_o he_o see_v his_o bear_a record_n without_o the_o spirit_n have_v be_v but_o a_o ordinary_a testimony_n not_o his_o say_n but_o
conceive_v more_o by_o the_o boundless_a power_n of_o the_o divine_a inspiration_n than_o we_o can_v possible_o reach_v unto_o and_o there_o be_v never_o place_n of_o scripture_n so_o since_o the_o apostle_n day_n expound_v if_o before_o that_o i_o dare_v say_v the_o spirit_n aim_v at_o nothing_o else_o and_o all_o be_v know_v all_o know_v good_a exposition_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n but_o the_o spirit_n have_v many_o depth_n which_o never_o yet_o be_v search_v therefore_o our_o anchorhold_a must_v be_v on_o the_o word_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v float_v in_o the_o wide_a vast_a sea_n of_o imagination_n and_o fancy_n without_o sail_n oar_n or_o rudder_n without_o card_n or_o compass_v by_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o non_fw-la entes_fw-la or_o non_fw-la extantes_fw-la allusiones_fw-la vnextant_a allusion_n which_o be_v in_o the_o thought_n of_o our_o bless_a apostle_n it_o be_v no_o rule_n or_o canon_n which_o be_v not_o extant_a non_fw-la ens_fw-la be_v a_o ill_a guide_n to_o ens._n beside_o the_o syriack_n now_o much_o differ_v from_o that_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n how_o then_o can_v we_o find_v out_o what_o the_o apostle_n conceive_v for_o the_o syriack_n and_o arabic_a now_o in_o use_n except_o perhaps_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n be_v translate_v out_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o not_o the_o greek_a out_o of_o these_o have_v we_o exact_o the_o identicall_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d first_o original_a manuscript_n in_o which_o s._n matthew_n write_v his_o gospel_n and_o s._n paul_n his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o hebrew_n or_o syriack_n have_v we_o the_o true_a selfsame_a paper_n or_o parchment_n in_o which_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n or_o their_o amanuensis_n write_v the_o divine_a dictate_v we_o may_v better_o guess_v at_o their_o thought_n and_o the_o allusion_n to_o which_o they_o bend_v themselves_o but_o now_o heinsius_n will_v have_v we_o to_o shoot_v at_o rover_n or_o rather_o to_o no_o steadie_a mark_n at_o all_o at_o the_o then_o thought_n of_o our_o apostle_n last_o the_o worthy_a heinsius_n do_v a_o little_a interfere_v when_o he_o counsel_v we_o to_o go_v to_o the_o allusion_n which_o be_v in_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o to_o the_o allusion_n which_o be_v extant_a for_o suppose_v i_o grant_v that_o he_o have_v find_v whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n allude_v to_o in_o his_o mind_n be_v not_o this_o now_o extant_a or_o can_v a_o thing_n be_v find_v which_o be_v not_o extant_a the_o three_o conclusion_n trench_v upon_o heinsius_n be_v this_o they_o have_v no_o liberty_n leave_v unto_o they_o to_o put_v in_o their_o own_o conceit_n or_o in_o write_v to_o add_v or_o blot_v out_o what_o they_o have_v do_v this_o point_n concern_v the_o matter_n which_o be_v write_v peter_n moulin_n in_o his_o three_o epistle_n to_o bishop_n andrews_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 182_o page_n of_o the_o say_a bishop_n opuscula_fw-la write_v thus_o pavius_n thus_o quae_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la &_o fidem_fw-la pertinent_a ab_fw-la apostolis_n statuta_fw-la sunt_fw-la afflatu_fw-la divino_fw-la in_fw-la caeteris_fw-la saepe_fw-la usi_fw-la sunt_fw-la suâ_fw-la prudentiâ_fw-la ut_fw-la innuit_fw-la pavius_n what_o thing_n soever_o concern_v faith_n or_o salvation_n they_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o apostle_n under_o the_o guidance_n of_o divine_a inspiration_n in_o other_o thing_n they_o often_o use_v their_o own_o discretion_n and_o prudence_n as_o s._n paul_n intimate_v 1._o cor._n 7.25_o the_o grave_n and_o profound_a oracle_n thus_o answer_v he_o pag._n 193._o habuerit_fw-la 193._o parciùs_fw-la ista_fw-la de_fw-fr apostolis_n prudentiâ_fw-la suâ_fw-la ufis_fw-la periculose_a enim_fw-la vel_fw-la dicitur_fw-la vel_fw-la scribitur_fw-la apostolos_fw-la in_o quibusdam_fw-la asslatu_fw-la divino_fw-la in_fw-la reliquis_fw-la suâ_fw-la prudentiâ_fw-la saepe_fw-la usos_fw-la idque_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quae_fw-la scripta_fw-la reperiuntur_fw-la atqui_fw-la vel_fw-la illium_fw-la ipsum_fw-la locum_fw-la ubi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cis_fw-la ità_fw-la concludi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ità_fw-la ut_fw-la vel_fw-la illius_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d à_fw-la spiritu_fw-la dei_fw-la dictamen_fw-la suum_fw-la habuerit_fw-la i_o pray_v you_o speak_v more_o spare_o of_o this_o point_n viz._n that_o the_o apostle_n use_v their_o own_o wisdom_n or_o prudence_n for_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o say_v or_o write_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v in_o some_o thing_n inspire_v from_o heaven_n in_o the_o rest_n often_o use_v their_o own_o counsel_n and_o prudence_n and_o that_o in_o matter_n which_o be_v find_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o you_o know_v it_o be_v conclude_v immediate_o after_o these_o word_n according_a to_o my_o opinion_n or_o judgement_n and_o i_o think_v also_o that_o i_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 1._o cor._n 7.40_o so_o that_o his_o very_a opinion_n or_o judgement_n have_v its_o dictate_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n again_o if_o the_o place_n cite_v be_v not_o inspire_v but_o write_v in_o humane_a prudence_n we_o must_v note_v it_o as_o apocryphal_a then_o let_v we_o make_v a_o expurgatorie_n index_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o we_o must_v separate_v that_o which_o be_v precious_a from_o that_o which_o be_v vile_a thing_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n will_v never_o stand_v mix_v with_o thing_n divine_o inspire_v so_o far_o he_o enough_o indeed_o for_o a_o epistle_n but_o i_o can_v have_v wish_v that_o the_o most_o learned_a walking-librarie_n have_v more_o full_o answer_v all_o the_o objection_n which_o do_v most_o forcible_o arietate_fw-la the_o truth_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v couch_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n which_o be_v cite_v by_o peter_n moulin_n if_o i_o come_v upon_o the_o stage_n after_o roscius_n i_o look_v not_o for_o praise_v but_o pardon_n let_v we_o muster_v up_o all_o their_o force_n together_o and_o since_o that_o famous_a bishop_n have_v withstand_v the_o utmost_a of_o their_o strength_n in_o the_o first_o brunt_n the_o rest_n will_v like_o the_o french_a fury_n in_o war_n be_v the_o easy_a answer_v the_o first_o objection_n be_v 1._o cor._n 7.6_o i_o speak_v this_o by_o permission_n and_o not_o of_o commandment_n the_o second_o objection_n be_v vers_n 10._o unto_o the_o marry_a i_o command_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o the_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v a_o common_a man_n may_v speak_v and_o both_o deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v but_o i_o say_v these_o thing_n be_v teach_v of_o god_n the_o three_o objection_n be_v vers_n 12._o to_o the_o rest_n speak_v i_o not_o the_o lord_n the_o four_o objection_n vers_fw-la 25._o concern_v virgin_n i_o have_v no_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o i_o give_v my_o judgement_n as_o one_o that_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v faithful_a the_o five_o objection_n vers_fw-la 40._o she_o be_v happy_a if_o she_o so_o abide_v after_o my_o judgement_n and_o i_o think_v also_o that_o i_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o the_o first_o i_o thus_o answer_v the_o apostle_n mean_v not_o that_o he_o be_v permit_v only_o to_o write_v or_o speak_v some_o thing_n and_o command_v to_o write_v other_o thing_n nor_o touch_v it_o any_o part_n of_o his_o thought_n to_o permit_v a_o little_a sin_n that_o a_o great_a may_v be_v avoid_v as_o some_o hence_o maintain_v culpam_fw-la maintain_v dum_fw-la tribuit_fw-la veniam_fw-la denotat_fw-la culpam_fw-la while_o he_o forgive_v they_o he_o grant_v they_o be_v faulty_a say_v augustine_n concern_v these_o word_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr peccat_fw-la orig._n cap._n 38._o again_o de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi conjugali_fw-la cap._n 10._o datur_fw-la 10._o quis_fw-la ambigat_fw-la absurdissimè_fw-la dici_fw-la non_fw-la eos_fw-la peccâsse_fw-la quibus_fw-la venia_fw-la datur_fw-la it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o say_v they_o sin_v not_o who_o pardon_n absolve_v again_o in_o ench●r_n cap._n 78._o fateatur_fw-la 78._o quis_fw-la esse_fw-la peccatum_fw-la neget_fw-la cùm_fw-la dari_fw-la veniam_fw-la facientibus_fw-la apostoliea_n authoritas_fw-la fateatur_fw-la who_o can_v deny_v there_o be_v a_o fault_n where_o the_o apostle_n confess_v that_o the_o doer_n thereof_o be_v forgive_v i_o answer_v erasmus_n say_v some_o copy_n have_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d secundum_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la as_o augustine_n and_o other_o read_v and_o then_o the_o sense_n be_v i_o tell_v you_o my_o opinion_n or_o this_o be_v my_o advice_n i_o leave_v you_o to_o yourselves_o i_o do_v not_o command_v it_o god_n make_v not_o it_o a_o matter_n of_o precept_n but_o thus_o i_o advise_v or_o counsel_n and_o then_o it_o sound_v all_o one_o with_o that_o in_o the_o 25._o verse_n where_o the_o apostle_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sontentiam_fw-la do_v and_o verse_n 40._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d judicium_fw-la 〈◊〉_d liberum_fw-la interim_n faciens_fw-la hac_fw-la in_o re_fw-la suum_fw-la cuique_fw-la judicium_fw-la
hellenist_n chaldee_n paraphrase_n or_o any_o heathen_a author_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o necessary_o evince_v that_o the_o holy_a actuary_n or_o notary_n do_v oversee_v read_v hear_v or_o transcribe_v those_o thing_n out_o of_o their_o knowledge_n from_o the_o say_a author_n but_o both_o the_o name_n of_o those_o author_n and_o the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v present_v to_o they_o by_o that_o bless_a spirit_n which_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o this_o among_o the_o rest_n that_o these_o word_n phrase_n and_o sentence_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o holy_a writ_n which_o now_o be_v in_o it_o all_o scripture_n be_v of_o divine_a inspiration_n but_o the_o very_a word_n be_v part_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o even_o they_o be_v inspire_v revel_v 19.9_o the_o angel_n say_v write_v bless_a be_v they_o which_o be_v call_v unto_o the_o marriage-supper_n of_o the_o lamb_n do_v not_o the_o angel_n speak_v the_o word_n do_v not_o he_o give_v the_o apostle_n both_o matter_n and_o word_n when_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v revel_v 14.13_o by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n to_o write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n be_v he_o command_v to_o write_v his_o conceit_n and_o thought_n apprehend_v in_o syriack_n and_o translate_v they_o into_o hellenisticall_a greek_a or_o do_v the_o heavenly_a voice_n suggest_v only_o a_o holy_a inspiration_n into_o he_o and_o leave_v he_o to_o coin_v word_n as_o heinsius_n will_v have_v it_o or_o rather_o do_v not_o the_o voice_n teach_v the_o very_a word_n which_o shall_v be_v write_v viz._n bless_a be_v the_o dead_a &_o c._n now_o let_v we_o pass_v to_o the_o five_o and_o last_o conclusion_n in_o which_o we_o must_v dissent_v from_o the_o worthy_a heinsius_n and_o disarm_v he_o of_o his_o often-inculcated_n but_o not_o once_o prove_v tenet_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o writer_n of_o holy_a scripture_n conceive_v in_o one_o language_n and_o write_v in_o a_o other_o upon_o which_o ground_n he_o have_v raise_v a_o strange_a structure_n but_o his_o very_a groundwork_n be_v sandy_a slippery_a and_o false_a and_o this_o i_o hope_v to_o evince_v by_o scripture_n authority_n and_o reason_n all_o which_o shall_v be_v square_v to_o that_o cornerstone_n which_o more_o than_o once_o before_o i_o hew_v upon_o more_o rough_o and_o now_o by_o god_n grace_n intend_v to_o polish_v namely_o that_o the_o very_a word_n and_o letter_n be_v dictate_v unto_o the_o holy_a scribe_n and_o therefore_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o change_v or_o transchange_n to_o add_v or_o diminish_v or_o to_o express_v by_o their_o own_o word_n their_o internal_a irradiation_n but_o in_o the_o language_n which_o they_o conceive_v they_o also_o write_v their_o heavenly_a dictate_v 2._o pet._n 1.21_o the_o prophecy_n come_v not_o in_o old_a time_n by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o their_o very_a speech_n be_v according_a to_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n their_o word_n be_v not_o of_o their_o own_o choice_n but_o from_o above_o and_o not_o only_o divine_a thought_n but_o sacred_a word_n be_v also_o give_v they_o 1._o cor._n 2.13_o s._n paul_n speak_v in_o word_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n inspire_v thought_n into_o they_o in_o one_o language_n and_o teach_v they_o word_n to_o speak_v in_o a_o other_o language_n cui_fw-la bono_fw-mi to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n and_o why_o not_o all_o do_v in_o the_o language_n which_o they_o conceive_v 2._o tim._n 3.16_o scriptura_fw-la per_fw-la spiritum_fw-la scripta_fw-la est_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v write_v by_o the_o spirit_n say_v the_o syriack_n not_o only_o inspire_v as_o it_o be_v from_o the_o greek_a but_o write_v and_o as_o it_o be_v inspire_v write_v revel_v 19.9_o the_o angel_n say_v concern_v very_a word_n which_o he_o command_v to_o be_v write_v these_o be_v the_o true_a say_n of_o god_n not_o inspiration_n only_o of_o god_n and_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o the_o say_n of_o god_n exod._n 34.27_o write_v thou_o these_o word_n for_o after_o the_o tenor_n of_o these_o word_n i_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n god_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o word_n moses_n be_v to_o the_o write_n of_o the_o very_a word_n jerem._n 30.2_o write_v thou_o all_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o thou_o in_o a_o book_n he_o give_v he_o no_o power_n to_o put_v in_o word_n of_o his_o own_o twelve_o time_n in_o the_o revelation_n be_v s._n john_n command_v to_o write_v and_o know_v he_o not_o the_o word_n hos_fw-la 8.12_o i_o have_v write_v to_o ephraim_n the_o great_a thing_n of_o my_o law_n even_o all_o what_o my_o prophet_n have_v do_v i_o challenge_v as_o my_o own_o writing_n authority_n of_o man_n the_o scripture_n be_v write_v spiritus_fw-la write_v magisterio_fw-la spiritus_fw-la in_o obedience_n to_o the_o spirit_n say_v sasbout_o on_o peter_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o the_o power_n leave_v unto_o they_o of_o write_v their_o own_o conceit_n but_o be_v fit_v with_o word_n by_o the_o spirit_n scripsisset_fw-la spirit_n si_fw-mi spiritu_fw-la saucto_fw-la inspirati_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la eo_fw-la impulsi_fw-la locuti_fw-la sunt_fw-la prophetae_fw-la &_o caeteri_fw-la librorum_fw-la sacrorum_fw-la scriptores_fw-la consequens_fw-la est_fw-la scripturam_fw-la totam_fw-la esse_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la accipiendam_fw-la quàm_fw-la si_fw-la deus_fw-la immediatè_fw-la &_o absque_fw-la humano_fw-la vel_fw-la angelico_n ministerio_fw-la eam_fw-la edidisset_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la ità_fw-la dicam_fw-la digito_fw-la svo_fw-la scripsisset_fw-la if_o the_o prophet_n and_o other_o writer_n of_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v by_o the_o move_a and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n no_o otherwise_o to_o be_v esteem_v of_o by_o we_o then_o if_o god_n immediate_o without_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n have_v set_v it_o forth_o and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v have_v write_v it_o with_o his_o own_o finger_n say_v the_o learned_a estius_n even_o cornelius_n cornelii_n à_fw-la lapide_fw-la himself_n on_o timothy_n thus_o literas_fw-la thus_o prophetae_fw-la &_o alii_fw-la scriptores_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vocantur_fw-la calami_fw-la &_o instrumenta_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la quast_o scribae_fw-la velociter_fw-la scribentis_fw-la inspirantis_fw-la &_o dictantis_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la the_o prophet_n and_o other_o holy_a penman_n of_o scripture_n be_v style_v the_o pen_n and_o instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o of_o that_o scribe_n who_o speedy_o write_v inspire_v and_o dictate_v the_o divine_a writ_n where_o he_o confess_v the_o holy_a spirit_n not_o to_o inspire_v only_o but_o to_o dictate_v yea_o to_o write_v like_o a_o swift_a scribe_n the_o holy_a scripture_n gregorius_n praefat._n in_o job_n cap._n 2._o proferunt_fw-la 2._o scriptores_fw-la sacri_fw-la eloquii_fw-la quia_fw-la repleti_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la super_fw-la se_fw-la trahuntur_fw-la quasi_fw-la extra_fw-la semetipsos_fw-la fiunt_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la dei_fw-la sententias_fw-la quasi_fw-la de_fw-la labiis_fw-la proferunt_fw-la the_o writer_n of_o the_o heavenly_a word_n because_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v elevate_v above_o themselves_o in_o he_o and_o as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o themselves_o and_o so_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n be_v utter_v as_o it_o be_v by_o their_o lip_n athanasius_n epist_n ad_fw-la lib._n say_v composuit_fw-la say_v christus_fw-la vetus_fw-la &_o novum_fw-la testamentum_fw-la composuit_fw-la christ_n make_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n dominu●_fw-la testament_n quid_fw-la est_fw-la illud_fw-la o●_n domini_fw-la nisi_fw-la scripturae_fw-la per_fw-la quas_fw-la loquor_fw-la dominu●_fw-la what_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o the_o scripture_n by_o which_o the_o lord_n speak_v say_v rupert_n on_o matth._n lib._n 4._o philo_z judaeus_n in_o lib._n quis_fw-la rerum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la haeres_fw-la thus_o alio_fw-la thus_o propheta_fw-la nihil_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la proloquitur_fw-la sed_fw-la omne_fw-la submonente_fw-la alio_fw-la a_o prophet_n prophesi_v nothing_o out_o of_o his_o own_o brain_n but_o all_o thing_n by_o the_o prompt_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o witty_o conclude_v therefore_o not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o word_n be_v his_o own_o chrysostom_n de_fw-fr lazaro_n homil._n 4._o though_o a_o dead_a man_n revive_v and_o a_o angel_n come_v from_o heaven_n you_o must_v believe_v scripture_n above_o all_o for_o the_o master_n of_o angel_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a he_o himself_o frame_v they_o the_o same_o chrysostom_n de_fw-fr expulsione_n ipsius_fw-la show_v the_o manner_n i_o read_v his_o own_o handwriting_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v do_v by_o his_o hand_n the_o very_a writing_n itself_o be_v he_o and_o therefore_o call_v chyrographum_fw-la dei_fw-la a_o writing_n under_o god_n own_o hand_n by_o augustine_n
nothing_o certain_a concern_v her_o death_n nor_o be_v her_o body_n or_o her_o tombstone_n find_v on_o earth_n nor_o do_v s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n who_o outlive_v she_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o all_o man_n consent_n write_v any_o thing_n of_o her_o death_n much_o less_o of_o her_o assumption_n though_o as_o christ_n commit_v she_o to_o he_o so_o he_o take_v her_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o his_o own_o home_n &_o be_v a_o son_n unto_o she_o joh._n 19.26_o 27._o among_o those_o who_o assent_n to_o her_o assumption_n reperitur_fw-la assumption_n monstrosa_fw-la quaedam_fw-la discrepantia_fw-la reperitur_fw-la there_o be_v monstrous_a diversity_n say_v baronius_n anno_fw-la christi_fw-la 48._o num_fw-la 4._o which_o word_n i_o wonder_v he_o will_v let_v drop_n from_o his_o pen_n or_o that_o other_o of_o their_o side_n will_v suffer_v to_o be_v print_v of_o the_o former_a instance_n i_o say_v the_o less_o because_o if_o all_o which_o be_v suppose_v be_v grant_v and_o if_o they_o have_v this_o privilege_n to_o prevent_v other_o in_o their_o bodily_a glory_n yet_o it_o be_v long_o after_o christ_n ascension_n whereas_o my_o principal_a question_n be_v of_o those_o many_o that_o arise_v about_o christ_n passion_n who_o in_o particular_a they_o be_v 8._o the_o sum_n be_v pineda_n have_v take_v great_a pain_n to_o little_a purpose_n have_v presume_v to_o name_v those_o who_o the_o scripture_n or_o any_o sound_a tradition_n have_v leave_v unname_v his_o proof_n have_v be_v so_o slender_a as_o his_o conjecture_n have_v be_v bold_a he_o convince_v not_o exact_o that_o any_o one_o of_o those_o who_o he_o specialize_v be_v raise_v much_o less_o to_o eternal_a happiness_n and_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o some_o of_o those_o who_o he_o name_v do_v not_o then_o arise_v to_o a_o glorious_a immortality_n in_o the_o particular_a instance_n in_o those_o who_o arise_v about_o christ_n death_n his_o fellow-jesuite_n dare_v not_o follow_v he_o definire_fw-la he_o non_fw-la ausim_fw-la de_fw-fr ullo_fw-la particulatim_fw-la definire_fw-la i_o dare_v not_o say_v peremptory_o that_o any_o such_o a_o one_o be_v raise_v say_v lorinus_n most_o modest_o on_o act._n 7.29_o yet_o still_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o many_o body_n which_o sleep_v arise_v etc._n etc._n though_o the_o book_n be_v clasp_v the_o secret_a reserve_v and_o no_o absolute_a knowledge_n can_v inform_v we_o who_o they_o be_v o_o lord_n who_o do_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a to_o thou_o do_v i_o confess_v the_o blindness_n of_o my_o understanding_n open_v i_o beseech_v thou_o those_o eye_n of_o my_o mind_n dispel_v the_o cloud_n lead_v i_o in_o the_o right_a way_n amid_o by-path_n and_o uncertainty_n even_o for_o thy_o own_o sake_n who_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o the_o true_a life_n so_o be_v it_o lord_n jesus_n amen_o amen_n chap._n xiiii_o 1._o my_o conjecture_n that_o none_o of_o the_o patriarch_n or_o old_a prophet_n be_v raise_v 2._o a_o objection_n concern_v peter_n know_v of_o moses_n and_o elias_n on_o mount_n tabor_n answer_v 3._o a_o conjecture_n that_o the_o saint_n who_o live_v in_o christ_n time_n and_o die_v before_o he_o be_v raise_v at_o his_o passion_n who_o they_o be_v in_o most_o likelihood_n when_o joseph_n the_o repute_a father_n of_o christ_n do_v die_v 4._o the_o end_n why_o they_o be_v raise_v to_o who_o they_o appear_v 5._o a_o crotchet_n concern_v the_o wife_n of_o dead_a man_n which_o have_v be_v raise_v if_o still_o you_o press_v the_o question_n who_o those_o many_o be_v or_o who_o be_v some_o of_o those_o many_o i_o answer_v with_o lorinus_n that_o part_n of_o truth_n lie_v hide_v and_o cover_v among_o conjecture_n i_o propound_v this_o my_o own_o as_o probable_a first_o negative_o that_o none_o of_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n prophet_n or_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n arise_v for_o if_o one_o who_o be_v he_o and_o why_o not_o other_o as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o if_o they_o have_v rise_v who_o shall_v have_v know_v they_o or_o how_o can_v they_o induce_v the_o then_o live_v to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v the_o same_o patriarch_n or_o prophet_n they_o may_v have_v be_v as_o well_o think_v to_o have_v be_v incarnate_a spirit_n for_o the_o evil_a spirit_n also_o keep_v about_o the_o tomb_n and_o grave_n of_o the_o decease_a unless_o you_o will_v multiply_v miracle_n upon_o miracle_n and_o say_v god_n by_o miracle_n do_v reveal_v these_o to_o be_v true_a patriarch_n otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o prove_v it_o to_o those_o who_o live_v 2000_o year_n after_o they_o and_o if_o there_o have_v be_v such_o miracle_n the_o evangelist_n will_v not_o have_v slip_v they_o 2._o yea_o but_o s._n peter_n know_v moses_n and_o elias_n at_o christ_n transfiguration_n though_o they_o be_v take_v away_o from_o among_o man_n long_o before_o and_o therefore_o the_o then_o live_a may_v know_v the_o dead_a patriarch_n and_o holy_a man_n raise_v though_o they_o die_v long_o before_o i_o answer_v that_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n james_n and_o john_n may_v know_v by_o the_o conference_n between_o christ_n and_o moses_n and_o elias_n who_o they_o be_v whereas_o christ_n never_o converse_v or_o confer_v with_o those_o that_o be_v raise_v for_o aught_o that_o be_v record_v or_o probable_o to_o be_v maintain_v and_o it_o be_v a_o figment_n to_o say_v or_o imagine_v that_o there_o be_v any_o three_o person_n which_o know_v both_o the_o then_o raise_v on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o live_n which_o never_o have_v be_v dead_a on_o the_o other_o side_n or_o can_v give_v assurance_n that_o the_o raise_v be_v such_o and_o such_o patriarch_n and_o father_n nor_o be_v their_o testimony_n to_o be_v take_v one_o for_o another_o since_o the_o denial_n or_o doubt_n concern_v any_o one_o draw_v in_o the_o denial_n or_o doubt_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o upon_o supposal_n of_o one_o false_a apparition_n any_o one_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v question_v second_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n john_n may_v know_v moses_n and_o elias_n by_o divine_a revelation_n which_o to_o they_o be_v not_o unfrequent_a as_o christ_n divinity_n be_v reveal_v to_o peter_n matth._n 16.17_o and_o ananias_n his_o heart_n act._n 5.3_o etc._n etc._n or_o as_o luke_n know_v by_o the_o spirit_n that_o peter_n weep_v bitter_o though_o peter_n weep_v secret_o for_o he_o go_v out_o first_o luk._n 22.62_o and_o what_o he_o go_v out_o purposely_o to_o conceal_v shall_v we_o think_v that_o he_o do_v purposely_o reveal_v now_o though_o the_o apostle_n have_v supernal_a illumination_n guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n yet_o that_o by_o divine_a revelation_n extraordinary_a every_o one_o of_o they_o then_o live_v at_o jerusalem_n know_v every_o one_o of_o they_o who_o be_v raise_v and_o appear_v unto_o they_o be_v unnecessary_o to_o multiply_v many_o miracle_n now_o since_o they_o know_v not_o the_o person_n of_o the_o raise_v by_o christ_n nor_o any_o other_o three_o person_n nor_o by_o heavenly_a instruction_n they_o can_v no_o way_n know_v the_o raise_v patriarch_n unless_o by_o their_o picture_n or_o statue_n which_o of_o all_o other_o way_n be_v most_o unprobable_a as_o be_v a_o course_n not_o practise_v in_o those_o time_n and_o place_n the_o argument_n now_o have_v receive_v its_o answer_n peter_n may_v many_o way_n and_o do_v some_o way_n know_v moses_n and_o elias_n and_o yet_o i_o find_v not_o any_o way_n whereby_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o holy_a city_n can_v personal_o know_v the_o patriarch_n and_o father_n be_v before_o bury_v and_o incinerate_v and_o therefore_o i_o probable_o conclude_v not_o any_o one_o of_o these_o be_v raise_v 3._o second_o my_o positive_a probable_a conjecture_n be_v this_o which_o also_o seem_v more_o likely_a to_o lucas_n brugensis_n that_o many_o of_o those_o saint_n who_o live_v in_o christ_n time_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o memory_n be_v fresh_a and_o who_o child_n kindred_n or_o acquaintance_n be_v yet_o live_v and_o who_o be_v know_v to_o adhere_v to_o christ_n and_o to_o this_o opinion_n bishop_n bilson_n seem_v somewhat_o to_o incline_v many_n i_o say_v of_o those_o dead_a saint_n now_o arise_v and_o appear_v unto_o many_o as_o it_o may_v be_v john_n the_o baptist_n though_o the_o deceitful_a miracle-monger_n show_v the_o false_a relic_n of_o that_o good_a saint_n head_n in_o divers_a place_n and_o zacharie_n and_o elisabeth_n his_o parent_n and_o those_o many_o luk._n 1.66_o and_o those_o shepherd_n luk._n 2.8_o and_o those_o wonderer_n to_o who_o the_o shepherd_n tell_v our_o saviour_n nativity_n luk._n 2.18_o perhaps_o some_o will_v add_v those_o wiseman_n who_o come_v to_o worship_n christ_n matth._n 2.2_o and_o old_a simeon_n and_o anna_n the_o prophetess_n and_o joseph_n christ_n repute_a father_n though_o
after_o death_n exclude_v judgement_n in_o this_o life_n and_o place_v death_n rather_o before_o judgement_n than_o any_o great_a distance_n betwixt_o death_n and_o judgement_n according_a to_o the_o native_a use_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o which_o before_o the_o second_o exposition_n be_v of_o gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_n 9_o valentia_n tom._n 4._o disp_n 1._o quaest_n 22._o punct_a 9_o who_o appli_v the_o word_n to_o the_o particular_a judgement_n immediate_o upon_o death_n so_o do_v ludovicus_n de_fw-fr ponte_fw-la vallis_n oletani_n 9_o oletani_n part._n 1._o meditat._n medit_n 9_o who_o set_v it_o down_o as_o a_o verity_n of_o faith_n mortem_fw-la faith_n de_fw-fr particulari_fw-la judicio_fw-la animae_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la proximè_fw-la post_fw-la mortem_fw-la judicium_fw-la singulorum_fw-la exerceri_fw-la invisibiliter_fw-la statim_fw-la post_fw-la eujusque_fw-la mortem_fw-la concern_v the_o particular_a judgement_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v do_v immediate_o after_o death_n every_o one_o be_v judge_v invisible_o present_o after_o his_o death_n and_o evince_v it_o by_o this_o text._n so_o do_v joannes_n 692._o joannes_n viguer_n instit_fw-la pag._n 692._o viguerius_n spiritual_fw-la viguerius_n bus_fw-la initio_fw-la panarii_fw-la antidotorum_fw-la spiritual_fw-la busaeus_n the_o jesuit_n likewise_o account_v consequens_fw-la account_v secundum_fw-la novissimum_fw-la est_fw-la judicium_fw-la particular_a mortem_fw-la proximè_fw-la consequens_fw-la the_o second_o last_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o particular_a judgement_n follow_v death_n immediate_o the_o severity_n whereof_o say_v he_o job_n the_o holy_a patient_n fear_v job_n 31.14_o what_o shall_v i_o do_v when_o god_n rise_v up_o and_o when_o he_o visit_v what_o shall_v i_o answer_v he_o s._n ambrose_n on_o this_o place_n have_v it_o thus_o sva_fw-la thus_o post_fw-la mortem_fw-la judicabitur_fw-la unusquisque_fw-la ●uxta_fw-la userita_fw-la sva_fw-la every_o one_o shall_v be_v judge_v after_o death_n according_a to_o their_o own_o deserve_n which_o word_n do_v point_n at_o the_o particular_a judgement_n say_v suarez_n last_o lest_o i_o may_v seem_v too_o eager_a against_o the_o second_o book_n of_o esdras_n let_v i_o borrow_v a_o testimony_n or_o two_o from_o thence_o 2_o esdr_n 9.11_o 12._o they_o that_o loathe_v my_o law_n while_o they_o have_v yet_o liberty_n and_o place_n of_o repentance_n open_a unto_o they_o must_v know_v it_o after_o death_n by_o pain_n and_o 2._o esdr_n 7.56_o while_o we_o live_v and_o commit_v sin_n we_o consider_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v begin_v to_o suffer_v for_o it_o after_o death_n whence_o we_o may_v probable_o collect_v that_o the_o beginning_n of_o punishment_n be_v immediate_o after_o death_n upon_o the_o particular_a judgement_n and_o the_o increase_n or_o additament_n at_o the_o general_a judgement_n 2_o that_o some_o be_v in_o torment_n before_o the_o general_a day_n of_o retribution_n 3_o that_o the_o beginning_n to_o suffer_v be_v not_o after_o a_o long_a time_n god_n only_a know_v how_o long_o but_o after_o death_n yea_o present_o after_o it_o all_o these_o proof_n on_o each_o side_n make_v way_n for_o the_o three_o and_o best_a interpretation_n that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v not_o only_a either_o of_o these_o judgement_n but_o both_o of_o they_o benedictus_fw-la justinian_n on_o these_o word_n thus_o daemonum_fw-la thus_o post_fw-la eujusque_fw-la obitum_fw-la sequitur_fw-la judicium_fw-la privatum_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la cuique_fw-la suarum_fw-la actionum_fw-la reddit_fw-la urus_fw-la estrationem_fw-la post_fw-la finem_fw-la mundi_fw-la erit_fw-la judicium_fw-la omnium_fw-la tum_fw-la hominum_fw-la tum_fw-la daemonum_fw-la after_o every_o one_o death_n private_a judgement_n follow_v in_o which_o every_o one_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o action_n after_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v the_o judgement_n of_o all_o both_o man_n and_o devil_n of_o both_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v understand_v say_v he_o so_o also_o salmeron_n and_o hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la and_o carthusianus_n oecolampadius_n thus_o refert_fw-la thus_o sive_z speciale_a judicium_fw-la intelligas_fw-la sive_fw-la generale_fw-mi vihil_fw-la refert_fw-la whether_o you_o understand_v the_o special_a judgement_n or_o the_o gener_fw-la all_o it_o matter_n not_o thus_o have_v i_o bring_v you_o back_o to_o the_o point_n where_o i_o first_o begin_v that_o this_o text_n be_v fit_v to_o my_o intention_n afford_v i_o just_a liberty_n to_o write_v whatsoever_o may_v be_v conceive_v or_o express_v concern_v the_o estate_n of_o humane_a soul_n in_o their_o animation_n or_o in_o death_n or_o after_o it_o in_o the_o life_n future_a because_o the_o word_n must_v be_v expound_v of_o both_o judgement_n and_o now_o the_o text_n be_v clear_v from_o ambiguity_n the_o term_n explain_v the_o state_n be_v make_v firm_a and_o sure_a not_o roll_v and_o changeable_a and_o be_v fix_v upon_o its_o basis_n and_o foundation_n three_o question_n do_v seem_v to_o arise_v from_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o text_n and_o each_o of_o they_o to_o crave_v its_o answer_n before_o i_o come_v to_o my_o main_a intendment_n first_o how_o and_o when_o death_n come_v to_o be_v appoint_v for_o we_o second_o whether_o adam_n and_o his_o child_n all_o and_o every_o one_o without_o privilege_n or_o exception_n must_v and_o shall_v die_v it_o be_v appoint_v for_o man_n to_o die_v three_o whether_o they_o that_o be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a at_o any_o time_n do_v die_v the_o second_o time_n it_o be_v appoint_v to_o man_n once_o to_o die_v o_o gracious_a lord_n who_o ordere_v all_o thing_n sweet_o and_o who_o do_v dispose_v whatsoever_o man_n do_v purpose_n i_o humble_o implore_v thy_o powerful_a guidance_n and_o enlighten_v assistance_n in_o all_o this_o work_n for_o his_o sake_n who_o be_v alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n thy_o only_a son_n my_o bless_a saviour_n jesus_n christ_n amen_o chap._n ii_o 1_o how_o god_n be_v immortal_a how_o angel_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n how_o adam_n body_n be_v mortal_a and_o yet_o immortal_a though_o compound_v of_o contrary_n 2_o aristotle_n last_a word_n his_o death_n holcot_n or_o the_o philosopher_n pray_v for_o he_o aristotle_n canonize_v by_o his_o follower_n plato_n and_o aristotle_n compare_v vives_z tax_v adam_n body_n be_v not_o frame_v of_o ●he_n earth_n or_o dust_n of_o paradise_n 3._o adam_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v subject_a to_o any_o external_a force_n he_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o creature_n inward_a distemper_n he_o can_v not_o have_v adam_n bodily_a temperature_n christ_n who_o be_v fair_a than_o the_o child_n of_o adam_n the_o help_n for_o adam_n body_n meat_n drink_z and_o sleep_v 4._o divers_a opinion_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n if_o adam_n have_v eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n before_o or_o after_o his_o fall_n he_o have_v live_v for_o ever_o if_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v he_o have_v not_o die_v though_o he_o have_v not_o taste_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n to_o what_o use_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n shall_v have_v serve_v 5._o the_o council_n of_o milan_n cardinal_n cajetan_n richeomus_n the_o jesuit_n julianus_n pomerius_fw-la and_o s._n augustine_n think_v that_o adam_n can_v not_o have_v die_v if_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n holcot_n doctor_n estius_n and_o two_o passage_n of_o scripture_n canonical_a be_v authority_n evince_v that_o adam_n have_v in_o the_o state_n of_o innocency_n a_o immortal_a body_n 1._o to_o the_o full_a answer_v of_o the_o first_o question_n how_o or_o why_o death_n be_v appoint_v for_o we_o i_o shall_v need_v to_o clear_v but_o these_o two_o point_n that_o adam_n for_o sin_n be_v appoint_v to_o die_v that_o adam_n sin_n and_o punishment_n be_v propagate_v to_o we_o thus_o sin_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o death_n thus_o we_o be_v appoint_v to_o die_v because_o of_o sin_n as_o a_o preparative_n to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o two_o point_n i_o hold_v it_o fit_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o adam_n at_o first_o be_v make_v a_o immortal_a creature_n concern_v adam_n soul_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o man_n descend_v from_o he_o that_o they_o be_v immortal_a i_o hope_v to_o prove_v it_o so_o sound_o in_o a_o other_o part_n of_o this_o tractate_n that_o i_o will_v fear_v no_o other_o reproof_n but_o this_o that_o i_o bring_v too_o much_o proof_n for_o it_o therefore_o suppose_v or_o rather_o borrow_v that_o truth_n which_o by_o god_n grace_n shall_v be_v repay_v with_o interest_n i_o now_o come_v to_o show_v that_o adam_n body_n be_v create_v immortal_a immortal_a i_o say_v not_o as_o god_n be_v immortal_a who_o neither_o have_v beginning_n nor_o shall_v have_v end_n with_o who_o be_v no_o shadow_n of_o change_n much_o less_o any_o real_a substantial_a change_n who_o have_v as_o all_o other_o good_a thing_n else_o so_o immortality_n eminent_o and_o so_o eminent_o that_o our_o apostle_n in_o some_o sort_n exclude_v all_o other_o and_o appropriate_v it_o to_o he_o say_v 1
country_n if_o upon_o impose_v crime_n by_o a_o appellant_n the_o defendant_n shall_v yield_v or_o be_v overcome_v in_o battle_n amissione_n battle_n v●imo_fw-la supplicio_fw-la punietur_fw-la cum_fw-la poena_fw-la gravi_fw-la vel_fw-la graviori_fw-la secundum_fw-la criminis_fw-la qualitatem_fw-la cum_fw-la exhaeredatione_fw-la haeredum_fw-la suorum_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la bonorum_fw-la amissione_n he_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n with_o a_o grievous_a or_o more_o grievous_a pain_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o crime_n with_o the_o disinherit_n of_o his_o heir_n and_o loss_n of_o all_o his_o good_n furthermore_o though_o he_o be_v slay_v yet_o the_o formality_n of_o the_o common-law_n proceed_v adjudge_v he_o to_o capital_a punishment_n that_o thereby_o his_o posterity_n may_v suffer_v the_o grievous_a concomitancy_n of_o his_o deserve_a infamy_n say_v that_o most_o learned_a m._n selden_n my_o most_o courteous_a and_o love_a friend_n in_o his_o duello_n or_o single_a combat_n pag._n 30._o 5._o but_o let_v we_o come_v from_o the_o sword_n where_o thing_n be_v cut_v out_o with_o more_o rigour_n if_o not_o crucltie_n unto_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a and_o so_o more_o civil_a and_o peaceable_a do_v not_o s._n peter_n stand_v in_o stead_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n when_o christ_n say_v to_o he_o joh._n 21.15_o 16._o feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o again_o feed_v my_o sheep_n vers_fw-la 17._o likewise_o when_o christ_n say_v to_o he_o matth._n 16.19_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n and_o when_o this_o promise_n to_o peter_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o matth._n 18.18_o and_o when_o both_o these_o promise_n be_v fulfil_v and_o accomplish_v as_o they_o be_v after_o christ_n resurrection_n and_o not_o before_o and_o authority_n give_v and_o by_o a_o solemn_a ceremony_n exhibit_v by_o christ_n not_o only_o to_o s._n peter_n but_o to_o all_o and_o every_o of_o the_o apostle_n say_v joh._n 20.21_o etc._n etc._n as_o my_o father_n have_v send_v i_o even_o so_o send_v i_o you_o and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v this_o he_o breathe_v on_o they_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o soever_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v unto_o they_o and_o who_o soever_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v do_v not_o the_o apostle_n represent_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o ministry_n unless_o you_o will_v fable_n that_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n they_o have_v more_o need_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n than_o we_o have_v now_o or_o that_o christ_n love_v not_o his_o church_n now_o nor_o afford_v the_o like_a mean_n of_o pardon_n and_o reconciliation_n as_o he_o do_v in_o those_o time_n but_o by_o the_o same_o deceitfulness_n of_o cavillation_n you_o may_v say_v as_o well_o that_o when_o christ_n break_v bread_n and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o give_v the_o cup_n to_o they_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o none_o but_o they_o may_v eat_v or_o drink_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o it_o be_v undeniable_a that_o when_o christ_n say_v to_o his_o twelve_o apostle_n luk._n 22.19_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o he_o speak_v it_o to_o they_o as_o representour_n of_o the_o whole_a priesthood_n only_o who_o only_o have_v power_n to_o consecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n indeed_o hierome_n say_v euag._n say_v quid_fw-la facit_fw-la episcopus_fw-la exceptâ_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la quod_fw-la presbyter_n non_fw-la facit●_n epist_n 85._o ad_fw-la euag._n what_o do_v a_o bishop_n except_o ordination_n which_o a_o priest_n do_v not_o as_o if_o the_o apostle_n represent_v the_o bishop_n in_o that_o point_n only_o and_o the_o centurioator_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o first_o bishop_n after_o the_o apostle_n be_v make_v bishop_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o they_o say_v no_o more_o than_o be_v confirm_v 1._o timothy_n 5.22_o and_z titus_n 1.5_o act._n 20.28_o but_o other_o father_n extend_v the_o comparison_n between_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n to_o other_o matter_n appropriate_v to_o the_o bishop_n above_o the_o presbyter_n the_o power_n of_o confirmation_n and_o divers_a other_o thing_n all_o which_o though_o we_o grant_v yet_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v but_o for_o preach_v baptise_v and_o especial_o for_o consecrate_v of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o sacerdotal_a absolution_n or_o ministerial_a remission_n of_o sin_n the_o apostle_n represent_v not_o the_o people_n in_o any_o wise_a nor_o the_o bishop_n only_o but_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o christ_n minister_n and_o do_v not_o among_o we_o the_o right_a reverend_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n and_o the_o clergy_n assemble_v in_o the_o convocation_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o they_o our_o nationall_n council_n do_v not_o their_o article_n of_o religion_n bind_v in_o conscience_n all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o then_o civil_a law_n nor_o be_v there_o the_o like_a humane_a authority_n on_o earth_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o our_o conscience_n in_o matter_n of_o scripture_n or_o scripture_n controvert_v or_o to_o be_v controvert_v as_o the_o external_a public_a breathe_a voice_n of_o a_o true_a ecumenical_a council_n of_o the_o patriarch_n bishop_n and_o choice_a divine_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n the_o essential_a universal_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v and_o we_o must_v believe_v it_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 3.15_o it_o never_o err_v it_o can_v err_v its_o judgement_n be_v infallible_a the_o spirit_n lead_v this_o church_n into_o all_o truth_n joh._n 16.13_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n consist_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o any_o one_o age_n or_o time_n i_o dare_v say_v it_o never_o do_v err_v damnable_o or_o persist_v in_o small_a error_n obstinate_o but_o always_o some_o true_o maintain_v thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o unto_o this_o fluctuant_fw-la militant_a part_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n have_v promise_v to_o be_v with_o it_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n matt._n 28.20_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n at_o no_o time_n can_v fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o some_o seek_v after_o the_o truth_n and_o embrace_v it_o and_o profess_v it_o subject_a it_o be_v to_o nesciency_n of_o some_o thing_n and_o perhaps_o to_o some_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n but_o it_o can_v err_v in_o thing_n necessary_a nor_o in_o less_o matter_n schismatical_o with_o obdurate_a pertinacy_n of_o the_o representative_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o counsel_n this_o may_v be_v say_v true_o and_o safe_o viz._n of_o the_o first_o six_o general_n ecumenical_a counsel_n not_o one_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la err_v in_o any_o definition_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n of_o other_o lawful_a general_a counsel_n that_o may_v hereafter_o be_v call_v though_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o they_o may_v possible_o be_v deceive_v as_o they_o be_v man_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o free_a from_o errability_n but_o if_o such_o counsel_n may_v err_v or_o pronounce_v amiss_o can_v cobbler_n yet_o there_o be_v least_o likelihood_n of_o their_o err_a such_o ecumenical_a counsel_n have_v the_o supreme_a public_a external_a definitive_a judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n if_o any_o oppose_v they_o they_o may_v not_o only_o silence_v they_o but_o censure_v they_o with_o great_a censure_n and_o reduce_v they_o into_o order_n private_a spirit_n must_v sit_v down_o and_o rest_n in_o their_o determination_n else_o do_v the_o counsel_n lose_v operam_fw-la &_o oleum_fw-la what_o s._n ambrose_n epist_n 32._o say_v of_o one_o general_a council_n separare_fw-la council_n sequor_fw-la tractatum_fw-la niceni_n concilii_fw-la à_fw-la quo_fw-la me_fw-it 〈◊〉_d mors_fw-la nec_fw-la gladius_fw-la 〈◊〉_d separare_fw-la i_o follow_v the_o decision_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n from_o which_o neither_o death_n nor_o sword_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v i_o i_o say_v of_o all_o true_a and_o general_a counsel_n and_o of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o they_o who_o bind_v the_o rest_n without_o which_o issue_n the_o gather_n of_o counsel_n yea_o and_o of_o parliament_n also_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a for_o though_o it_o be_v a_o true_a and_o just_a complaint_n of_o andreas_n duditius_n quinquecclesiensis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la that_o in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n the_o voice_n be_v rather_o number_v then_o well_o weigh_v yet_o he_o do_v not_o he_o can_v find_v fault_n with_o that_o course_n in_o a_o just_a and_o lawful_a general_n council_n but_o direct_v his_o complaint_n against_o the_o tyrannical_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n
the_o easy_a thing_n any_o man_n may_v judge_v of_o in_o the_o more_o abstruse_a the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v legis_fw-la follow_v quam_fw-la clavem_fw-la habebant_fw-la legis_fw-la dectores_fw-la nisi_fw-la interpretationem_fw-la legis_fw-la what_o key_n have_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n say_v tertullian_n in_o the_o same_o place_n but_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o law_n so_o the_o key_n of_o interpretation_n rest_v in_o the_o ministry_n for_o thing_n which_o need_v interpretation_n as_o hard_a place_n do_v though_o the_o key_n of_o agnition_n in_o thing_n unto_o which_o their_o knowledge_n can_v aspire_v be_v permit_v yea_o commend_v unto_o all_o man_n and_o they_o who_o withhold_v this_o key_n of_o knowledge_n from_o the_o people_n be_v accurse_v by_o christ_n luke_n 11.52_o to_o the_o further_o explain_v of_o my_o opinion_n let_v we_o consider_v in_o a_o church_n corrupt_v these_o two_o sort_n of_o people_n first_o the_o magistrate_n either_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a and_o we_o will_v subdivide_v they_o into_o the_o wilful_o blind_a and_o the_o purblind_a of_o the_o first_o be_v some_o bishop_n and_o noble_n and_o gentry_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n who_o hunt_v after_o blood_n even_o the_o blood_n of_o innocent_n and_o strain_v their_o authority_n to_o the_o high_a such_o be_v now_o the_o inquisition_n false_o call_v the_o holy_a house_n with_o all_o the_o chief_a officer_n thereof_o such_o in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n be_v divers_a scribe_n pharisee_n sadducee_n and_o some_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n who_o know_v the_o truth_n to_o be_v on_o christ_n side_n by_o his_o do_v such_o miracle_n as_o no_o man_n ever_o do_v before_o do_v choke_v and_o strangle_v their_o belief_n make_v shipwreck_n of_o their_o conscience_n resist_v the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o will_v neither_o go_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n nor_o suffer_v other_o that_o be_v enter_v to_o go_v in_o against_o who_o christ_n pronounce_v woe_n upon_o woe_n matth._n 23.13_o etc._n etc._n for_o they_o take_v away_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n luke_n 11.52_o and_o purposely_o keep_v the_o people_n ignorant_a and_o blind_a according_a to_o their_o demerit_n there_o be_v reserve_v for_o they_o intima_fw-la inferni_fw-la the_o depth_n of_o hell_n blackness_n of_o darkness_n and_o the_o great_a torment_n thereof_o without_o repentance_n the_o next_o tribe_n or_o sort_n be_v the_o purblind_a magistracy_n either_o secular_a or_o clergy_n such_o be_v divers_a in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n mary_n who_o have_v learning_n enough_o to_o know_v that_o all_o go_v not_o right_a yet_o do_v not_o vehement_o oppose_v the_o truth_n but_o do_v swim_v with_o the_o stream_n &_o make_v the_o time_n their_o stern_n the_o whole_a church_n turn_v and_o return_v three_o or_o four_o time_n in_o one_o age_n these_o be_v seduce_v as_o well_o as_o seducer_n such_o also_o at_o this_o day_n be_v divers_a in_o the_o papacy_n more_o moderate_a less_o rigid_a and_o rigorous_a conceal_v some_o truth_n they_o know_v because_o they_o have_v give_v up_o their_o heart_n and_o belief_n to_o trust_v in_o their_o church_n for_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o do_v not_o know_v though_o they_o have_v mean_n to_o learn_v and_o capacity_n to_o understand_v if_o they_o will_v and_o therefore_o be_v faulty_a such_o also_o be_v divers_a in_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o state_n you_o kill_v the_o prince_n of_o life_n say_v s._n peter_n to_o the_o people_n act_v 3.15_o and_o now_o brethren_n i_o wot_v that_o through_o ignorance_n you_o do_v it_o as_o do_v also_o your_o ruler_n such_o be_v those_o pharisee_n matth._n 15.12_o who_o be_v offend_v with_o christ_n of_o who_o christ_n say_v vers_fw-la 14._o they_o be_v blind_a leader_n of_o the_o blind_a and_o if_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a both_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o ditch_n inferni_fw-la ditch_n in_o foveam_fw-la peecati_fw-la &_o inferni_fw-la into_o the_o ditch_n of_o sin_n and_o hell_n say_v hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la on_o the_o place_n ducatur_fw-la place_n cùm_fw-la pastor_n per_fw-la abrupta_fw-la graditur_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la grex_fw-la in_o praecipitium_fw-la ducatur_fw-la when_o the_o shepherd_n go_v by_o craggy_a cliff_n the_o flock_n must_v needs_o fall_v headlong_o and_o break_v their_o neck_n say_v gregory_n infernus_fw-la gregory_n deuce_n praeceptores_fw-la fovea_fw-la infernus_fw-la the_o guide_n be_v the_o teacher_n and_o the_o ditch_n be_v hell_n say_v faber_n stapulensis_n on_o the_o place_n so_o much_o of_o the_o purblind_a magistracy_n clericall_a or_o laical_a in_o a_o corrupt_a church_n from_o the_o magistrate_n in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o descend_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o second_o place_n who_o we_o also_o divide_v into_o their_o several_a rank_n and_o file_n in_o the_o general_a they_o be_v either_o learned_a or_o unlearned_a the_o learned_a be_v first_o such_o as_o go_v against_o their_o conscience_n and_o practice_v contrary_a to_o their_o knowledge_n and_o belief_n sail_v with_o wind_n and_o tide_n and_o because_o they_o will_v be_v find_v fault_n withal_o by_o the_o few_o they_o will_v do_v as_o the_o most_o do_v timorous_a hypocrite_n they_o be_v fear_v persecution_n loss_n of_o good_n liberty_n and_o life_n more_o than_o they_o fear_v god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o destroy_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n for_o who_o be_v keep_v the_o allotment_n of_o hypocrite_n brimstone_n and_o fire_n storm_n and_o tempest_n ignis_fw-la &_o vermis_fw-la this_o shall_v be_v their_o portion_n to_o drink_v without_o repentance_n an_o other_o sort_n of_o learned_a man_n profess_v truth_n there_o be_v in_o a_o corrupt_a church_n and_o each_o of_o they_o forsooth_o will_v be_v a_o reformer_n of_o the_o public_a these_o despise_v government_n be_v presumptuous_a self-willed_a they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n 2._o pet._n 2.10_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o thing_n that_o they_o understand_v not_o vers_n 12._o as_o out_o of_o question_n they_o understand_v not_o all_o thing_n which_o in_o their_o carp_a humour_n they_o censure_v people-pleasers_a ambitious_a of_o esteem_n full_a of_o word_n run_v as_o much_o after_o their_o own_o will_n as_o after_o their_o conscience_n hearty_a enough_o to_o draw_v on_o danger_n obstinate_a enough_o to_o provoke_v death_n of_o these_o man_n though_o they_o die_v for_o some_o truth_n yet_o because_o they_o have_v a_o mixture_n of_o many_o error_n in_o their_o intellect_n perverseness_n in_o their_o will_n and_o ill_o ground_v ill_o bound_v affection_n want_v those_o godly_a endowment_n of_o charity_n before_o speak_v of_o we_o may_v pronounce_v as_o the_o apostle_n do_v they_o shall_v utter_o perish_v in_o their_o own_o corruption_n 2._o pet._n 2.12_o such_o a_o fellow_n be_v he_o and_o his_o like_a of_o who_o 1543._o who_o anno_fw-la 1543._o mr._n fox_n report_v that_o when_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n interpret_v the_o word_n to_o this_o effect_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v break_v distribute_v and_o eat_v so_o when_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n the_o bless_a word_n be_v missense_v as_o if_o christ_n have_v then_o say_v the_o scripture_n must_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n and_o receive_v by_o they_o by_o which_o force_a exposition_n the_o seal_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o thrice-blessed_n sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v utter_o annihilate_v whereas_o indeed_o in_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n there_o be_v include_v verba_fw-la concionatoria_fw-la &_o praedicanda_fw-la word_n predicatorie_a and_o serve_v for_o doctrine_n i_o will_v not_o esteem_v he_o as_o a_o holy_a perfect_a martyr_n who_o die_v with_o such_o crotchet_n in_o his_o brain_n such_o pride_n in_o his_o heart_n such_o a_o one_o be_v ravaillac_n who_o for_o conscience_n sake_n forsooth_o stab_v the_o anoint_v of_o the_o lord_n the_o heros_n of_o our_o time_n his_o natural_a sovereign_n henry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n he_o follow_v his_o conscience_n but_o his_o conscience_n have_v ill_a guide_n when_o he_o have_v outface_v torture_n and_o death_n itself_o though_o he_o think_v that_o he_o die_v a_o martyr_n if_o he_o die_v unrepentant_a the_o power_n of_o hell_n get_v hold_v upon_o he_o such_o manner_n of_o people_n be_v those_o jew_n who_o in_o most_o desperate_a fashion_n say_v his_o blood_n be_v on_o we_o and_o on_o our_o child_n matt._n 27.25_o do_v you_o think_v they_o all_o be_v whole_o ignorant_a do_v you_o think_v they_o all_o swerve_v against_o their_o conscience_n or_o rather_o meddle_v they_o not_o in_o thing_n above_o their_o calling_n be_v they_o not_o too_o presumptuous_a thus_o though_o they_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o some_o truth_n and_o perhaps_o will_v have_v die_v for_o they_o yet_o their_o zeal_n want_v more_o and_o better_a knowledge_n to_o have_v rectify_v their_o conscience_n and_o they_o shall_v have_v call_v
unless_o he_o keep_v still_o a_o jewish_a heart_n within_o he_o which_o certain_o he_o do_v if_o balthasar_n bambach_n say_v true_o of_o he_o revelavit_fw-la he_o praecipua_fw-la mysteria_fw-la reticuit_fw-la &_o nibil_n arcani_fw-la revelavit_fw-la he_o conceal_v the_o chief_a mystery_n and_o reveal_v nothing_o of_o their_o secret_n seven_o that_o many_o hebrew_a radixes_fw-la do_v signify_v not_o only_a thing_n wonderful_o disparat_fw-la and_o incompatible_a the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o as_o sheol_n signify_v the_o grave_n in_o some_o place_n and_o hell_n in_o other_o place_n which_o cause_v some_o to_o deny_v christ_n descent_n in_o his_o humane_a soul_n into_o hell_n but_o even_o thing_n clean_o contrary_a this_o instance_n as_o the_o former_a shall_v be_v in_o a_o word_n general_o know_v job_n 2.9_o his_o wife_n say_v unto_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d curse_v god_n other_o render_v it_o bless_v god_n none_n hitherto_o have_v infallible_o expound_v it_o yet_o my_o laic_a can_v swallow_v camel_n &_o strain_n at_o gnat_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o translation_n make_v by_o the_o minister_n though_o the_o ground_n have_v be_v slippery_a and_o full_a of_o ice_n but_o will_v forsooth_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o meaning_n when_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o word_n as_o if_o one_o unskilful_a in_o the_o dutch_a language_n shall_v say_v when_o he_o hear_v a_o german_a speak_v i_o know_v his_o meaning_n by_o his_o gape_n or_o by_o the_o sound_n of_o his_o word_n or_o by_o the_o gargarism_n of_o his_o throat-speech_n though_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1._o thessaly_n 5.21_o prove_v all_o thing_n hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a yet_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o private_a man_n or_o misperswasion_n of_o the_o false_a apostle_n who_o presume_v very_o much_o and_o know_v very_o little_a these_o be_v to_o be_v try_v but_o concern_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o apostle_n do_v not_o say_v prove_v they_o examine_v they_o try_v they_o judge_v they_o but_o act_n 16.4_o paul_n and_o other_o minister_n as_o they_o go_v through_o the_o city_n deliver_v they_o the_o decree_n for_o to_o keep_v or_o observe_v that_o be_v ordain_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n which_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o or_o by_o this_o mean_n of_o keep_v or_o observation_n be_v the_o church_n establish_v in_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n verse_n 5._o but_o say_v the_o frantic_a libertine_n i_o be_o a_o man_n spiritual_a but_o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a judge_v all_o thing_n yet_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n 1._o corinth_n 2.15_o i_o answer_v s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o apostle_n who_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n vers_fw-la 12._o and_o speak_v in_o word_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v vers_fw-la 13._o and_o who_o may_v well_o neglect_v the_o judgement_n of_o man_n 1._o corinth_n 3.3_o prove_v thou_o thy_o apostleship_n by_o such_o undeniable_a miracle_n and_o testimony_n as_o they_o do_v and_o thou_o shall_v judge_v and_o not_o be_v judge_v but_o that_o every_o idiot_n shall_v claim_v the_o privilege_n of_o a_o apostle_n be_v lewd_a divinity_n or_o rather_o insufferable_a pride_n the_o angel_n in_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n be_v censure_v revel_v 2.20_o because_o he_o suffer_v that_o woman_n jezebel_n which_o call_v herself_o a_o prophetess_n to_o teach_v and_o seduce_v god_n servant_n if_o the_o profound_a divine_n on_o earth_n unexperienced_a in_o worldly_a course_n shall_v teach_v the_o skilful_a tradesman_n their_o trade_n or_o manufacture_n and_o meddle_v in_o their_o craft_n as_o they_o call_v they_o will_v they_o not_o expose_v themselves_o to_o laughter_n and_o mock_v be_v not_o the_o proverb_n of_o the_o world_n too_o true_a the_o great_a clerk_n be_v not_o the_o wise_a man_n if_o you_o take_v they_o from_o their_o book_n be_v there_o more_o depth_n in_o trade_n then_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o shall_v tradesman_n and_o woman_n judge_v of_o the_o depth_n of_o divinity_n and_o the_o learned_a divine_n in_o their_o own_o profession_n be_v not_o believe_v but_o laugh_v at_o control_v and_o censure_v by_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o unlearned_a people_n be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n subject_n to_o the_o prophet_n very_o learned_a man_n scarce_o trust_v to_o themselves_o a_o physician_n that_o be_v very_o sick_a seek_v counsel_n of_o a_o other_o who_o be_v whole_a and_o dare_v not_o trust_v his_o own_o judgement_n and_o shall_v a_o soul_n sick_a of_o sin_n sick_a of_o error_n sick_a of_o scruple_n be_v its_o own_o helper_n shall_v it_o understand_v without_o a_o guide_n be_v cleanse_v of_o its_o leprosy_n without_o a_o priest_n hierome_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o eph._n thus_o from_o my_o youth_n i_o never_o cease_v to_o read_v or_o to_o ask_v of_o learned_a man_n what_o i_o know_v not_o i_o never_o be_v i_o own_o master_n or_o teach_v myself_o and_o of_o late_o i_o journey_v purposely_o to_o alexandria_n unto_o didymus_n that_o he_o may_v satisfy_v i_o in_o all_o the_o doubt_n which_o i_o have_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n now_o adays_o many_o a_o one_o be_v wise_a than_o his_o teacher_n not_o by_o supernal_a illumination_n but_o by_o infernal_a presumption_n and_o if_o they_o have_v get_v by_o rote_n the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n and_o can_v ready_o cite_v tmemata_fw-la &_o tmematia_fw-la the_o chapter_n and_o the_o verse_n though_o they_o have_v little_o more_o judgement_n than_o cardinal_n ascanius_n his_o parrot_n which_o will_v prate_v the_o creed_n all_o over_o they_o vilify_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o their_o private_a spirit_n of_o seduction_n will_v bear_v they_o out_o 9_o out_o lib._n 11._o cap._n 9_o ruffinus_n say_v thus_o of_o basil_n and_o gregory_n nazianzen_n they_o be_v both_o nobleman_n both_o student_n at_o athens_n both_o colleague_n for_o thirteen_o year_n together_o all_o profane_a learning_n remove_v study_v on_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o follow_v the_o sense_n not_o take_v from_o their_o own_o presumption_n but_o from_o the_o writing_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_n which_o ancient_n it_o appear_v take_v the_o rule_n of_o right_a understanding_n the_o scripture_n from_o apostolic_a succession_n s._n basil_n himself_o say_v of_o himself_o and_o other_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n as_o for_o we_o we_o do_v not_o take_v our_o faith_n upon_o trust_n from_o other_o late_a man_n 〈◊〉_d man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nor_o dare_v we_o deliver_v to_o other_o the_o conceit_n of_o our_o own_o brain_n lest_o man_n device_n shall_v be_v think_v to_o be_v article_n of_o religion_n but_o what_o we_o have_v be_v teach_v of_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o we_o declare_v to_o those_o that_o ask_v of_o we_o how_o often_o do_v the_o divine_a s._n augustine_n confirm_v his_o interpretation_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o cyprian_a ambrose_n and_o other_o precede_a father_n how_o often_o do_v he_o confess_v his_o own_o ignorance_n though_o he_o be_v the_o most_o accomplish_a that_o ever_o write_v since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v a_o wise_a observation_n of_o scaliger_n that_o some_o word_n and_o passage_n in_o plato_n authore_fw-la plato_n plus_fw-fr sapiunt_fw-la authore_fw-la be_v wise_a than_o their_o author_n and_o many_o excellent_a conceit_n be_v collect_v from_o homer_n and_o aristotle_n which_o they_o never_o dream_v of_o but_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v contrary_a the_o spirit_n be_v and_o be_v infinite_a that_o do_v dictate_v it_o the_o finite_a capacity_n of_o man_n can_v comprehend_v it_o whatsoever_o good_a interpretation_n we_o find_v may_v well_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o yet_o the_o spirit_n may_v and_o do_v mean_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o wit_n of_o any_o man_n can_v never_o disclose_v and_o the_o true_a literal_a sense_n be_v the_o hard_a to_o find_v i_o confess_v i_o have_v dwell_v too_o long_o on_o this_o point_n but_o it_o be_v to_o vindicate_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o church_n from_o the_o singular_a fancy_n of_o private_a unskilful_a unlearned_a and_o censorious_a man_n and_o woman_n and_o to_o show_v the_o madness_n of_o those_o base_a people-pleasers_a or_o publicolae_fw-la who_o make_v or_o esteem_v tradesman_n and_o youth_n and_o ill-nurtured_a unlettered_a idiot_n yea_o though_o their_o place_n be_v eminent_a the_o competent_a judge_n of_o controversy_n while_o they_o flee_v from_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o university_n and_o from_o the_o representative_a church_n of_o our_o kingdom_n viz._n the_o most_o learned_a bishop_n and_o convocation-house_n unto_o who_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v recourse_n and_o in_o who_o judgement_n they_o be_v by_o way_n of_o obedience_n without_o opposition_n to_o set_v up_o their_o rest_n for_o as_o for_o private_a
together_o and_o make_v we_o sit_v together_o in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ_n jesus_n ephes_n 2.5_o 6._o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n philip._n 3.20_o from_o which_o positive_a proof_n and_o doctrine_n that_o christ_n stand_v in_o our_o stead_n and_o that_o almost_o all_o if_o not_o all_o his_o action_n and_o passion_n as_o he_o be_v the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v representative_a of_o we_o let_v we_o descend_v to_o the_o comparative_a and_o show_v that_o christ_n have_v do_v and_o will_v do_v more_o good_a unto_o we_o than_o adam_n have_v do_v harm_n which_o point_n i_o have_v more_o enlarge_v in_o my_o sermon_n at_o the_o readmitting_a into_o our_o church_n of_o a_o penitent_a christian_a from_o turkism_n be_v one_o of_o the_o two_o entitle_v a_o return_n from_o argier_n where_o these_o five_o reason_n be_v enlarge_v first_o that_o adam_n convey_v to_o we_o only_o one_o sin_n but_o christ_n give_v diversity_n of_o grace_n and_o many_o virtue_n which_o adam_n and_o his_o posterity_n shall_v never_o have_v have_v as_o patience_n virginity_n repentance_n compassion_n fraternal_a correction_n martyrdom_n second_o adam_n sin_n be_v the_o sin_n of_o a_o mere_a man_n only_o but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n merit_v for_o we_o three_o by_o adam_n offence_n we_o be_v liken_v to_o beast_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n our_o nature_n be_v exalt_v above_o all_o angel_n four_o adam_n disobedience_n can_v not_o infect_v christ_n christ_n merit_n cleanse_v adam_n save_v his_o soul_n and_o body_n five_o as_o by_o the_o first_o adam_n goodness_n be_v destroy_v so_o by_o the_o second_o adam_n great_a goodness_n be_v restore_v and_o all_o punishment_n yea_o all_o our_o own_o sin_n turn_v to_o our_o further_a good_a to_o which_o i_o will_v annex_v these_o thing_n follow_v by_o adam_n sin_n we_o be_v easy_o separate_v from_o god_n satan_n the_o woman_n and_o a_o apple_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n but_o i_o be_o persuade_v say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 8.38_o that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n again_o rom._n 5.13_o etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o divide_v the_o whole_a of_o time_n in_o this_o world_n into_o three_o part_n under_o three_o law_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n of_o moses_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o first_o section_n of_o time_n sin_n be_v in_o the_o world_n nevertheless_o death_n reign_v from_o adam_n to_o moses_n say_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n though_o death_n be_v in_o the_o world_n yet_o sin_n chief_o reign_v and_o the_o rather_o for_o the_o law_n nitimur_fw-la in_o vetitum_fw-la semper_fw-la cupimúsque_fw-la negatum_fw-la this_o the_o apostle_n confirm_v often_o especial_o rom._n 7.8_o sin_n take_v occasion_n wrought_v in_o i_o all_o manner_n of_o concupiscence_n the_o three_o part_n of_o time_n division_n be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o grace_n under_o christ_n and_o now_o not_o so_o much_o death_n not_o so_o much_o sin_n as_o righteousness_n and_o life_n do_v reign_n or_o rather_o we_o in_o they_o by_o christ_n and_o the_o power_n of_o both_o the_o other_o be_v diminish_v and_o shall_v be_v whole_o demolish_v if_o adam_n hurt_v all_o mankind_n one_o way_n or_o other_o christ_n have_v help_v all_o mankind_n many_o way_n in_o this_o life_n he_o give_v many_o blessing_n unto_o the_o reprobate_n his_o sun_n shine_v on_o all_o his_o rain_n fall_v both_o upon_o good_a and_o bad_a and_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o there_o ever_o be_v the_o man_n at_o least_o within_o the_o verge_n of_o the_o church_n but_o have_v at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o such_o a_o portion_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o such_o sweet_a inspiration_n put_v into_o his_o heart_n that_o if_o he_o have_v not_o quench_v by_o his_o natural_a forwardness_n the_o holy_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n god_n will_v have_v add_v more_o grace_n even_o enough_o to_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o salvation_n for_o god_n be_v rich_a in_o mercy_n ephes_n 2.4_o the_o father_n of_o mercy_n 2._o corinth_n 1.3_o thou_o love_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v and_o abhor_v nothing_o that_o thou_o have_v make_v for_o never_o will_v thou_o have_v make_v any_o thing_n if_o thou_o have_v hate_v it_o wisd_v 11.24_o what_o thou_o do_v abhor_v or_o hate_v thou_o do_v wish_v not_o to_o be_v what_o thou_o do_v make_v thou_o do_v desire_v it_o shall_v be_v say_v holcot_n on_o the_o place_n in_o our_o common-prayer-book_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o commination_n this_o be_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o church_n o_o merciful_a god_n which_o have_v compassion_n of_o all_o man_n and_o hate_v nothing_o that_o thou_o have_v make_v which_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v rather_o turn_v from_o sin_n and_o be_v save_v etc._n etc._n god_n be_v entitle_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d amator_fw-la animarum_fw-la a_o lover_n of_o soul_n wisd_v 11.26_o holcot_n on_o the_o place_n confirm_v it_o by_o ezek._n 18.4_o all_o soul_n be_v i_o say_v god_n man_n common_o love_v the_o body_n say_v holcot_n but_o god_n the_o soul_n praeparavit_fw-la soul_n amat_fw-la deus_fw-la animas_fw-la non_fw-la singulariter_fw-la sic_fw-la quòd_fw-la non_fw-la corpora_fw-la amet_fw-la sed_fw-la privilegialiter_fw-la quia_fw-la eas_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la in_o perpetuum_fw-la fruendum_fw-la praeparavit_fw-la god_n love_v the_o soul_n not_o only_o as_o if_o he_o do_v not_o love_v the_o body_n but_o principal_o because_o he_o have_v fit_v they_o for_o the_o eternal_a fruition_n of_o himself_o it_o be_v not_o the_o best_a apply_v distinction_n for_o who_o soever_o soul_n shall_v enjoy_v god_n their_o body_n also_o shall_v and_o that_o immortal_o for_o ever_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o god_n have_v love_v humane_a soul_n privilegialiter_fw-la because_o man_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o their_o creation_n or_o preservation_n he_o have_v speak_v more_o to_o the_o purpose_n nor_o think_v i_o that_o god_n forsake_v any_o but_o such_o as_o forsake_v he_o but_o froward_a thought_n separate_v from_o god_n wisd_a 1.3_o etc._n etc._n for_o into_o a_o malicious_a soul_n wisdom_n shall_v not_o enter_v nor_o dwell_v in_o the_o body_n that_o be_v subject_a unto_o sin_n for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o discipline_n will_v flee_v deceit_n and_o remove_v from_o thought_n that_o be_v without_o understanding_n concern_v the_o soul_n of_o infant_n die_v without_o the_o ordinary_a antidote_n to_o original_a sin_n baptism_n and_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n though_o they_o may_v most_o just_o be_v condemn_v yet_o who_o know_v how_o easy_a their_o punishment_n may_v be_v at_o least_o comparative_o as_o some_o imagine_v for_o that_o some_o drop_n of_o mercy_n may_v extraordinary_o distil_v upon_o they_o they_o can_v deny_v who_o say_v that_o the_o rebellious_a spirit_n of_o actual_o sinful_a man_n and_o angel_n be_v punish_v citra_fw-la condignum_fw-la but_o to_o leave_v these_o speculation_n i_o dare_v bold_o affirm_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o mitigation_n of_o torment_n in_o any_o of_o they_o it_o be_v not_o without_o reference_n to_o christ_n moreover_o the_o redeem_n of_o man_n be_v of_o more_o power_n than_o the_o very_a creation_n for_o this_o be_v perform_v by_o a_o calm_a fiat_n but_o the_o redemption_n be_v accomplish_v by_o the_o agony_n passion_n and_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n medium_n god_n aug._n in_o joan._n tractatu_fw-la 72._o post_v medium_n augustine_n on_o those_o word_n john_n 14.12_o great_a work_v then_o these_o shall_v he_o do_v say_v thus_o it_o be_v a_o great_a work_n to_o make_v a_o wicked_a man_n just_a then_o to_o create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n therefore_o much_o more_o do_v christ_n merit_n surmount_v the_o fault_n of_o adam_n in_o the_o first_o adam_n we_o only_o have_v posse_fw-la non_fw-la peccare_fw-la posse_fw-la non_fw-la mori_fw-la a_o possibility_n of_o not_o sin_v a_o possibility_n of_o not_o die_v we_o shall_v have_v be_v change_v though_o we_o have_v not_o die_v posse_fw-la bonum_fw-la non_fw-la deserere_fw-la a_o possibility_n of_o not_o forsake_v goodness_n and_o shall_v by_o his_o integrity_n and_o our_o endeavour_n have_v attain_v at_o the_o utmost_a but_o bene_fw-la agere_fw-la &_o beatificari_fw-la to_o do_v well_o and_o be_v bless_v by_o christ_n we_o have_v not_o only_a remission_n of_o sin_n and_o his_o righteousness_n impute_v but_o rich_a grace_n abundance_n of_o joy_n and_o royal_a gift_n not_o a_o more_o joyful_a but_o a_o more_o powerful_a grace_n say_v 11._o say_v non_fw-la laetiorem_fw-la sed_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la gratiam_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr correp_n &_o gratia_n cap._n 11._o augustine_n and_o we_o shall_v have_v non_fw-la posse_fw-la peccare_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la
while_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n possessionem_fw-la resurrection_n solenne_fw-fr autem_fw-la fuit_fw-la priscis_fw-la illis_fw-la patribus_fw-la ut_fw-la cuique_fw-la in_o svam_fw-la inferreretur_fw-la possessionem_fw-la each_o of_o those_o father_n be_v solemn_o bring_v into_o their_o own_o possession_n say_v the_o same_o masius_n which_o be_v thus_o confirm_v because_o abraham_n do_v bury_v sara_n in_o his_o own_o possession_n genes_n 23.19_o 20._o isaac_n and_o ishmael_n bury_v abraham_n in_o the_o field_n which_o abraham_n purchase_v of_o the_o son_n of_o heth_n genes_n 25.9_o 10._o and_o to_o sum_n up_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o cave_n that_o be_v in_o the_o field_n of_o machpelah_n the_o purchase_a cave_n and_o field_n which_o be_v before_o mambre_n be_v bury_v abraham_n and_o sara_n isaac_n and_o rebeka_n jacob_n and_o lea_n genes_n 49.30_o 31._o the_o distance_n of_o which_o cave_n or_o field_n from_o calvarie_n i_o gather_v before_o from_o adrichomius_n to_o be_v 250_o stadia_fw-la which_o upon_o allowance_n of_o eight_o stadia_fw-la to_o one_o mile_n amount_v to_o one_o and_o thirty_o mile_n and_o a_o quarter_n from_o which_o account_n s._n augustine_n differ_v but_o little_a consider_v the_o various_a reckon_n of_o mile_n with_o the_o diverse_a measuring_n of_o beginning_n and_o end_n for_o augustine_n quaest_n sup_v genes_n lib._n 1._o quaest_n 161._o thus_o report_v milliaribus_fw-la report_v dicunt_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la loco_fw-la quod_fw-la abrahemium_fw-la voco_fw-la ubi_fw-la sunt_fw-la ista_fw-la corpora_fw-la abesse_fw-la locum_fw-la ubi_fw-la crucifixus_fw-la est_fw-la dominus_fw-la ferè_fw-la triginta_fw-la milliaribus_fw-la from_o the_o place_n call_v abrahemium_fw-la or_o abraham_n churchyard_n where_o be_v these_o body_n namely_o of_o abraham_n and_o sara_n isaac_n and_o rebeka_n jacob_n and_o leah_n to_o the_o place_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v there_o be_v almost_o thirty_o mile_n distance_n now_o as_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o the_o three_o patriarch_n be_v thus_o far_o from_o jerusalem_n south-west-ward_n so_o sychem_n where_o joseph_n his_o bone_n be_v bury_v be_v far_o from_o jerusalem_n towards_o the_o north._n 4_o one_o difficulty_n more_o there_o be_v and_o a_o great_a one_o i_o may_v not_o pass_v it_o for_o the_o length_n will_v be_v recompense_v by_o the_o sweetness_n act_n 7.15_o 16._o jacob_n and_o our_o father_n die_v and_o be_v carry_v over_o unto_o sychem_n and_o lay_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n that_o abraham_n buy_v for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n of_o the_o son_n of_o emor_n the_o father_n of_o sychem_n which_o passage_n seem_v to_o contradict_v what_o out_o of_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n i_o prove_v concern_v the_o patriarch_n sepulchre_n that_o this_o be_v a_o knot_n hard_a to_o be_v untie_v all_o confess_v s._n hierom_n promise_v in_o his_o 101_o epist_n to_o clear_v it_o say_v lorinus_n and_o in_o his_o question_n on_o genes_n say_v beza_n but_o he_o have_v not_o perform_v his_o promise_n say_v both_o of_o they_o on_o act_n 7._o nodum_fw-la nectit_fw-la hieronimus_fw-la nec_fw-la eum_fw-la dissolvit_fw-la say_v erasmus_n and_o i_o only_o propound_v it_o say_v he_o that_o the_o studious_a reader_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o discuss_v it_o but_o this_o be_v a_o shallow_a slur_n unfit_a for_o so_o great_a a_o critic_n for_o many_o have_v do_v so_o much_o before_o and_o more_o than_o so_o i_o come_v to_o the_o point_n that_o there_o be_v invent_v many_o way_n and_o mean_n of_o answer_v can_v be_v deny_v but_o some_o be_v vast_a and_o improbable_a some_o more_o fair_a and_o expedite_a the_o absurd_a answer_n be_v two_o the_o first_o that_o the_o original_a be_v there_o corrupt_a and_o that_o for_o abraham_n jacob_n be_v to_o be_v write_v and_o read_v i_o say_v not_o mean_v expound_v or_o interpret_v but_o exchange_v and_o intrude_v into_o the_o text_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v expunge_v as_o needless_a it_o be_v with_o equal_a ignorance_n and_o boldness_n add_v by_o one_o or_o other_o say_v andrew_z masius_n on_o josh_n 24.32_o with_o masius_n agree_v beza_n in_o this_o that_o the_o name_n of_o abraham_n be_v creep_v into_o the_o text_n add_v that_o the_o err_a in_o note_n of_o number_n or_o proper_a name_n must_v not_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o author_n but_o to_o the_o ignorant_a transcriber_n but_o i_o say_v that_o the_o err_a in_o a_o proper_a name_n or_o note_n of_o number_n may_v breed_v as_o great_a and_o unsufferable_a confusion_n unlikelihood_n inconvenience_n yea_o untruth_n as_o the_o error_n in_o any_o other_o common_a word_n and_o why_o the_o error_n in_o proper_a name_n shall_v be_v ascribe_v to_o ignorant_a transcriber_n rather_o than_o error_n in_o other_o word_n or_o that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v privilege_v other_o word_n and_o not_o proper_a name_n or_o number_n from_o be_v mistake_v misplace_a misadded_a or_o superad_v in_o the_o text_n i_o see_v not_o aretius_n blunt_o blunder_v it_o out_o that_o you_o must_v understand_v jacob_n for_o abraham_n yet_o by_o what_o example_n or_o for_o what_o reason_n he_o mention_v not_o but_o stumble_v on_o a_o truth_n of_o which_o hereafter_o drusius_n praeterit_fw-la lib._n 5._o on_o the_o word_n quod_fw-la emit_fw-la abraham_n have_v yet_o some_o show_n of_o reason_n it_o seem_v say_v he_o it_o be_v sometime_o write_v emit_fw-la ipse_fw-la that_o be_v jacob_n into_o who_o place_n the_o name_n of_o abraham_n be_v creep_v 5._o beza_n defend_v it_o by_o two_o parallel_n the_o first_o out_o of_o hierom_n who_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr optimo_fw-la genere_fw-la interpretandi_fw-la ad_fw-la pammachium_fw-la note_v that_o the_o name_n of_o isaiah_n be_v creep_v into_o many_o copy_n on_o matth._n 13.35_o that_o afterward_o the_o name_n of_o asaph_n be_v substitute_v for_o isaiah_n and_o now_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v there_o read_v i_o answer_v to_o the_o misapply_v instance_n of_o beza_n that_o i_o can_v abide_v to_o hunt_v after_o error_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o cast_v aspersion_n on_o it_o to_o question_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o canon_n to_o pass_v our_o judgement_n whether_o the_o square_a or_o rule_v be_v right_a or_o crooked_a to_o put_v into_o the_o text_n or_o to_o take_v from_o it_o as_o some_o philologize_n neotericks_n endeavour_n in_o their_o super-nice_a criticism_n be_v to_o tear_v up_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o religion_n while_o other_o answer_n may_v be_v find_v though_o but_o probable_a i_o shall_v not_o have_v such_o a_o thought_n as_o beza_n have_v on_o luk._n 24.13_o where_o he_o acknowledge_v both_o the_o syriack_n and_o all_o our_o copy_n have_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sexaginta_fw-la threescore_o and_o the_o exact_a truth_n be_v accordant_a to_o that_o read_n for_o emaus_n be_v seven_o mile_n from_o jerusalem_n as_o mr_n sand_n who_o ride_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o emaus_n witness_v pag._n 174._o and_o threescore_o stadia_fw-la allow_v eight_o stadia_fw-la to_o a_o mile_n make_v seven_o mile_n and_o a_o half_a which_o halfe-mile_n upon_o diversity_n of_o measure_n or_o the_o begin_n of_o measure_v or_o end_n thereof_o make_v small_a difference_n yet_o beza_n say_v aut_fw-la hîc_fw-la peccatum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o numero_fw-la aut_fw-la apud_fw-la josephum_fw-la de_fw-la bello_fw-la judaico_fw-la 7.27_o non_fw-la rectè_fw-la scribuntur_fw-la stadia_fw-la triginta_fw-la the_o more_o favourable_a phrase_n shall_v have_v be_v by_o beza_n ascribe_v rather_o to_o the_o scripture_n then_o to_o josephus_n or_o can_v we_o think_v that_o all_o copy_n do_v err_v he_o make_v we_o fight_v upon_o the_o ice_n and_o to_o have_v no_o firm_a foot_n why_o shall_v he_o use_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o disjunction_n when_o he_o may_v better_o distinguish_v and_o so_o reconcile_v all_o likewise_o beza_n on_o luke_n 22.20_o confess_v the_o uniformity_n of_o read_v both_o in_o the_o syriack_n and_o all_o the_o greek_a copy_n which_o he_o have_v see_v yet_o add_v bold_o aut_fw-la manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la soloecophane_v aut_fw-la potiùs_fw-la cùm_fw-la haec_fw-la essent_fw-la ad_fw-la marginem_fw-la annotata_fw-la ex_fw-la matthaeo_n &_o marco_n postea_fw-la in_o contextum_fw-la irrepserunt_fw-la now_o though_o he_o will_v sleek_v it_o over_o afterward_o say_v potest_fw-la excusari_fw-la soloecismus_fw-la etc._n etc._n yet_o the_o wound_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n be_v too_o deep_a to_o be_v so_o heal_v and_o the_o very_a plaster_n be_v offensive_a for_o he_o commit_v a_o solecism_n who_o look_v on_o the_o earth_n cry_v out_o o_o coelum_fw-la and_o cast_v his_o eye_n up_o to_o heaven_n cry_v o_o terra_n have_v the_o reverend_a beza_n no_o handsome_a word_n for_o his_o plaster_n may_v he_o not_o have_v defend_v it_o by_o the_o hebrew_n idiotism_n without_o call_v it_o a_o solecism_n soloecophanes_n may_v have_v well_o be_v spare_v but_o soloecismus_n be_v not_o to_o be_v endure_v much_o more_o may_v be_v say_v but_o i_o dwell_v unwilling_o on_o this_o point_n and_o return_v
illumination_n as_o gerson_n style_v it_o columna_fw-la ignis_fw-la a_o pillar_n of_o fire_n exod._n 13.21_o stella_fw-la magos_n in_o oriente_n antecedens_fw-la the_o star_n conduct_v the_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o east_n matth._n 2.9_o a_o holy_a undeceive_v unambiguous_a influent_a coruscation_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o water_n gen._n 1.2_o this_o make_v abraham_n not_o unwilling_o to_o sacrifice_v his_o son_n the_o quench_n of_o this_o spirit_n against_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o his_o own_o convict_a conscience_n make_v the_o old_a prophet_n more_o inexcusable_a than_o the_o other_o officious_a lie_a prophet_n who_o deceive_v he_o 1._o king_n 13.16_o etc._n etc._n nor_o do_v a_o angel_n speak_v unto_o the_o seducer_n by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n vers_n 18._o samuel_n be_v but_o a_o child_n may_v not_o indeed_o as_o a_o novice_n or_o some_o other_o for_o a_o while_n may_v not_o know_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o peter_n at_o the_o present_a know_v not_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n by_o the_o angel_n in_o his_o miraculous_a delivery_n but_o now_o i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o god_n have_v send_v his_o angel_n yea_o i_o know_v of_o a_o surety_n act._n 12.11_o profane_a one_o i_o will_v not_o privilege_v from_o mistake_v of_o god_n as_o perhaps_o lest_o satan_n may_v outstretch_a his_o commission_n from_o god_n when_o he_o give_v job_n into_o his_o hand_n god_n say_v restrain_o only_o save_o his_o life_n job_n 2.6_o and_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la gerenda_fw-la cap._n 12._o tell_v a_o admirable_a story_n of_o two_o man_n each_o call_v curma_n to_o wit_n how_o curma_n the_o countryman_n lie_v almost_o dead_a many_o day_n only_o a_o little_a steam_n of_o breath_n come_v from_o he_o they_o keep_v he_o from_o burial_n though_o he_o be_v without_o motion_n or_o any_o feel_n whatsoever_o they_o do_v unto_o he_o in_o which_o time_n he_o see_v many_o vision_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o open_v his_o eye_n he_o say_v let_v one_o go_v to_o the_o house_n of_o curma_n the_o smith_n who_o be_v find_v dead_a that_o moment_n in_o which_o curma_n the_o husbandman_n come_v to_o his_o sense_n and_o the_o survive_a curma_n relate_v that_o he_o hear_v in_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o be_v return_v that_o the_o smith_n and_o not_o himself_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o that_o place_n a_o mistake_v there_o be_v by_o the_o messenger_n of_o death_n though_o it_o be_v after_o right_v caiaphas_n may_v not_o know_v the_o inspiration_n or_o instinct_n prophetical_a which_o he_o have_v because_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n dispensatiuè_n illi_fw-la contigit_fw-la sermo_fw-la he_o do_v distribute_v the_o speech_n to_o other_o which_o he_o know_v not_o himself_o say_v basil_n in_o prooem_n isaiae_n he_o be_v a_o prophet_n perchance_o casu_fw-la say_v origen_n on_o john_n balaam_n his_o ass_n and_o caiaphas_n speak_v they_o know_v not_o what_o the_o pprophecy_n be_v transitory_a say_v s._n augustine_n wherefore_o i_o conclude_v as_o before_o that_o wicked_a man_n may_v be_v punish_v with_o mistake_n in_o thing_n divine_a but_o that_o ever_o any_o holy_a man_n be_v ignorant_a to_o the_o end_n that_o god_n move_v when_o he_o move_v he_o or_o that_o the_o righteous_a be_v ever_o deceive_v by_o oraculous_a anfractuous_a perplexity_n or_o that_o the_o notary_n of_o heaven_n the_o writer_n of_o any_o part_n authentic_a of_o either_o testament_n can_v be_v deceive_v in_o their_o conception_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o likelihood_n reason_n or_o truth_n the_o last_o lemma_n be_v this_o the_o holy_a penman_n can_v not_o err_v in_o writing_n if_o they_o can_v what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o their_o write_n and_o other_o profane_a author_n and_o to_o what_o end_n have_v they_o infallibility_n of_o understanding_n if_o what_o they_o understand_v they_o can_v express_v erroneous_o a_o ready_a perfect_a and_o quick_a scribe_n write_v not_o false_o but_o my_o tongue_n be_v the_o pen_n of_o a_o ready_a writer_n say_v the_o psalmograph_n psal_n 45.1_o holy_a ezra_n who_o be_v the_o divine_a amanuensis_fw-la of_o the_o book_n of_o ezra_n be_v call_v by_o the_o same_o word_n sophir_n mahir_n a_o ready_a swift_a exact_a scribe_n ezra_n 7.6_o no_o question_n with_o allusion_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n john_n 16.13_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v come_v he_o will_v guide_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n how_o into_o all_o truth_n if_o there_o be_v a_o error_n in_o writing_n or_o have_v god_n care_n that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v not_o miss_v of_o the_o truth_n in_o their_o speech_n and_o yet_o miss_v in_o their_o write_n if_o the_o prophet_n can_v not_o err_v no_o more_o can_v the_o evangelist_n or_o apostle_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o superiority_n in_o privilege_n we_o be_v rather_o to_o ascribe_v it_o to_o these_o latter_a then_o to_o those_o former_a in_o regard_n that_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o grace_n be_v far_o above_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v demonstrate_v to_o the_o hebrew_n themselves_o but_o that_o the_o prophet_n can_v not_o err_v be_v apparent_a because_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v truth_n will_v not_o have_v appeal_v from_o the_o present_a more_o visible_a pretend_v synagogue_n to_o they_o as_o all-sufficient_a judge_n as_o he_o often_o do_v if_o they_o can_v err_v a_o perfect_a rule_n be_v not_o to_o be_v try_v by_o a_o imperfect_a one_o prophet_n write_v their_o prophecy_n and_o fasten_v they_o to_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o other_o public_a place_n to_o be_v read_v and_o be_v rather_o judge_v by_o their_o prophecy_n write_v then_o by_o they_o as_o inspire_v or_o utter_v by_o mouth_n the_o gnomon_n of_o the_o sundial_n which_o our_o late_a hieroglyphical_a poetaster_n do_v make_v to_o signify_v the_o scripture_n be_v better_a to_o be_v judge_v by_o a_o move_a clock_n the_o curious_a handie-work_n of_o the_o same_o great_a artist_n i_o mean_v by_o the_o church_n and_o churchman_n with_o who_o christ_n have_v promise_v his_o spirit_n shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n then_o by_o the_o rude_a mason_n or_o rather_o the_o senseless_a stone_n and_o mortar_n of_o the_o wall_n i_o mean_v the_o ignorant_a people_n who_o have_v pluck_v down_o not_o only_o the_o weathercock_n by_o his_o interpretation_n the_o pope_n but_o usurp_v to_o themselves_o a_o power_n to_o judge_v the_o gnomon_n and_o to_o reform_v and_o amend_v the_o well_o wrought_v well_o order_v clock_n the_o shallow_a fantastic_a state_v not_o the_o question_n aright_o when_o he_o be_v so_o magisterial_o peremptory_a say_v that_o the_o clergy_n may_v not_o so_o judge_v of_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o conclude_v or_o teach_v any_o thing_n against_o they_o or_o to_o vouch_v unwritten_a verity_n if_o they_o be_v certain_a verity_n it_o matter_v not_o much_o whether_o they_o be_v write_v or_o unwritten_a verity_n will_v vouch_v itself_o in_o spite_n of_o lie_a poet_n as_o some_o call_v they_o or_o tradition_n contradictory_n to_o the_o write_a word_n which_o contradictory_n tradition_n do_v much_o differ_v from_o unwritten_a verity_n howsoever_o the_o poet_n confuse_o join_v they_o for_o who_o of_o we_o ever_o teach_v that_o the_o clergy_n may_v teach_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o scripture_n when_o we_o profess_v with_o he_o that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o subject_v itself_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o fable_a rymer_n may_v say_v any_o thing_n who_o in_o his_o sarcasmos_fw-la and_o frontispiece_n be_v suffer_v thus_o to_o rave_v no_o wonder_n that_o the_o clergy_n will_v be_v king_n whereas_o we_o the_o now_o unprivileged_a clergy_n do_v humble_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o uphold_v our_o decline_a estate_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o atheist_n and_o turbulent_a antiepiscopall_a anti-monarchicall_a reformist_n perhaps_o pensioner_n of_o the_o forcin_n enemy_n of_o our_o state_n who_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o religion_n labour_v to_o pluck_v down_o our_o church_n and_o ecclesiastic_a hierarchy_n and_o upon_o the_o ruin_n thereof_o to_o arise_v to_o the_o deplume_v of_o the_o eagle_n to_o the_o beard_n of_o the_o lion_n not_o only_o to_o the_o pare_n of_o the_o royal_a prerogative_n but_o also_o the_o remove_v the_o very_a sceptre_n and_o crown_n from_o the_o anoint_v of_o the_o lord_n who_o god_n always_o mighty_o defend_v and_o to_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o popular_a government_n for_o no_o bishop_n no_o king_n say_v the_o learned_a wise_a and_o pious_a king_n james_n most_o true_o i_o return_v to_o retort_v the_o church-reforming_a poet_n word_n upon_o himself_o in_o his_o solarie_n he_o say_v that_o the_o dial_n be_v the_o write_a word_n which_o be_v of_o itself_o dead_a and_o unprofitable_a without_o further_a illumination_n since_o none_o of_o the_o philosopher_n nor_o
twelve_o time_n to_o write_v that_o he_o be_v compel_v i_o read_v not_o the_o second_o of_o john_n epistle_n vers_fw-la 12._o the_o apostle_n have_v many_o thing_n to_o write_v yet_o will_v not_o write_v with_o paper_n and_o ink_n or_o with_o ink_n and_o pen_n as_o he_o phrase_v it_o epist_n 3._o vers_fw-la 13._o if_o he_o will_v not_o how_o be_v he_o constrain_v s._n judas_n give_v all_o diligence_n to_o write_v vers_n 3._o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o coaction_n and_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o i_o to_o write_v say_v he_o in_o the_o same_o place_n it_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o be_v compel_v divers_a follower_n of_o solomon_n write_v his_o proverb_n who_o co-act_a they_o s._n paul_n write_v according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v unto_o he_o 2._o pet._n 3.15_o be_v this_o a_o power_n compulsive_a in_o the_o epistle_n to_o philemon_n vers_n 21._o have_v confidence_n in_o thy_o obedience_n i_o write_v unto_o thou_o know_v that_o thou_o will_v also_o do_v more_o than_o i_o say_v which_o word_n imply_v he_o will_v not_o have_v write_v if_o he_o have_v think_v philemon_n will_v have_v be_v obstinate_a or_o refractory_a and_o will_v have_v do_v nothing_o at_o his_o request_n howsoever_o he_o be_v free_a from_o coaction_n 2._o tim._n 1.5_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o unfeigned_a faith_n in_o timothy_n in_o lois_fw-fr and_o eunice_n be_v the_o reason_n of_o s._n paul_n writing_n unto_o he_o do_v reason_n use_v violence_n by_o silvanus_n i_o write_v brief_o exhort_v you_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1._o pet._n 5.12_o be_v he_o compel_v himself_o who_o exhort_v other_o est_fw-la other_o simpliciter_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la cogi_fw-la ad_fw-la actum_fw-la volendi_fw-la contradictio_fw-la est_fw-la it_o impli_v a_o contradiction_n to_o say_v simple_o the_o will_n be_v enforce_v to_o the_o act_n of_o willing_a say_v scotus_n the_o will_n may_v be_v compel_v by_o god_n or_o by_o the_o creature_n quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la actus_fw-la imperatos_fw-la so_o far_o as_o belong_v to_o the_o command_v act_n in_o which_o the_o body_n be_v passive_a joh._n 21.18_o another_o shall_v gird_v thou_o and_o carry_v thou_o whither_o thou_o will_v not_o say_v christ_n to_o peter_n many_o be_v compel_v to_o go_v to_o the_o gaol_n and_o to_o be_v hang_v but_o the_o will_n be_v induce_v quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la actus_fw-la elicitos_fw-la by_o the_o emanant_fw-la and_o distil_v act_n what_o the_o holy_a penman_n speak_v or_o write_v they_o do_v free_o and_o willing_o void_a of_o compulsion_n the_o five_o question_n follow_v viz._n whether_o the_o holy_a penman_n understand_v all_o that_o they_o write_v christopher_n castrus_n on_o the_o small_a prophet_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la vera_fw-la futurorum_fw-la cognition_n cap._n 12._o handle_v this_o point_n at_o large_a and_o to_o he_o i_o owe_v a_o great_a part_n of_o these_o authority_n montanus_n hold_v that_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n speak_v in_o a_o ecstasy_n not_o know_v what_o they_o say_v as_o epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 48._o contra_fw-la montanistas_n relate_v but_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n for_o it_o the_o devil_n so_o move_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o rapt_v or_o ecstaticall_a heathen_a that_o they_o neither_o understand_v what_o they_o speak_v nor_o have_v power_n not_o to_o speak_v and_o their_o speech_n be_v low_a out_o of_o the_o dust_n and_o their_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o ground_n isa_n 29.4_o as_o with_o the_o montanist_n their_o prophetess_n prisca_n and_o maximilla_n and_o among_o the_o heathen_a the_o pythonist_n and_o divers_a order_n of_o religious_a irreligion_n this_o day_n among_o the_o turk_n especial_o the_o dervish_n but_o our_o prophet_n say_v the_o worthy_a estius_n do_v speak_v and_o write_v prophetical_a light_n be_v infuse_v into_o they_o and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n inspire_v and_o with_o the_o free_a motion_n of_o their_o will_n the_o father_n be_v run_v in_o full_a stream_n to_o this_o depth_n origen_n homil._n 6._o in_o cap._n 16._o ezekielis_fw-la prophetae_fw-la ezekielis_fw-la non_fw-la excidebant_fw-la ment_fw-la prophetae_fw-la the_o prophet_n be_v in_o their_o right_a mind_n and_o tom._n 6._o in_o joan._n candorem_fw-la joan._n fatendum_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la proprio_fw-la ore_fw-la protulerunt_fw-la prophetae_fw-la eos_fw-la intellexisse_fw-la inque_fw-la labiis_fw-la gestâsse_fw-la animi_fw-la candorem_fw-la we_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o prophet_n understand_v what_o they_o speak_v and_o carry_v in_o their_o lip_n the_o courteous_a grace_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o periarch_n 3.3_o ministrabant_fw-la 3.3_o omnes_fw-la prophetae_fw-la vel_fw-la apostoli_fw-la divinis_fw-la responsis_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la mentis_fw-la obturbatione_fw-la ministrabant_fw-la all_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v obedient_a to_o the_o word_n divine_a without_o any_o disturbance_n or_o distraction_n of_o mind_n basil_n in_o prooemio_fw-la isaiae_n animus_fw-la isaiae_n sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la eos_fw-la extra_fw-la se_fw-la raptos_fw-la prophetare_fw-la humanâ_fw-la ment_fw-la à_fw-la spiritis_n absorptâ_fw-la verùm_fw-la id_fw-la abhorret_fw-la à_fw-la professione_n divinae_fw-la praesentiae_fw-la ●t_a amentem_fw-la reddat_fw-la qui_fw-la à_fw-la numine_fw-la corripitur_fw-la cúmque_fw-la plenus_fw-la divinorum_fw-la decretorum_fw-la esse_fw-la coeperit_fw-la tum_fw-la à_fw-la propria_fw-la ment_fw-la excidat_fw-la quomodo_fw-la consentaneum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la quis_fw-la ex_fw-la sapientiae_fw-la spiritu_fw-la reddatur_fw-la simillimus_fw-la insano_fw-la quin_fw-la potiùs_fw-la neque_fw-la lumen_fw-la caecitatem_fw-la parit_fw-la verùm_fw-la videndi_fw-la vim_o à_fw-la natura_fw-la insitam_fw-la expergefacit_fw-la nec_fw-la spiritus_fw-la tenebras_fw-la inducit_fw-la animus_fw-la some_o say_v that_o the_o divine_o illuminate_v do_v prophesy_v their_o humane_a soul_n be_v swallow_v up_o of_o the_o spirit_n but_o it_o abhor_v from_o the_o profess_a truth_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o divine_a presence_n to_o make_v he_o a_o mad_a man_n who_o be_v inspire_v by_o god_n and_o when_o he_o shall_v begin_v to_o be_v fill_v with_o divine_a oracle_n that_o then_o h●_n shall_v be_v out_o of_o his_o own_o wit_n be_v it_o likely_a or_o convenient_a that_o one_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n shall_v be_v make_v most_o like_a to_o a_o mad_a man_n rather_o light_a stir_v up_o the_o visive_a faculty_n natural_o nor_o do_v light_n breed_v blindness_n nor_o the_o spirit_n infuse_v darkness_n into_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n see_v the_o same_o basil_n on_o isaiah_n 13_o at_o the_o beginning_n chrysostom_n homil._n 29._o in_o primam_fw-la epist_n ad_fw-la corinth_n 12._o hierom_n in_o prooem_n isaiae_n &_o nahum_n &_o abacuc_n &_o in_o 3._o cap._n ad_fw-la ephes_n augustine_n de_fw-fr genes_n ad_fw-la literam_fw-la 12.9_o and_o epist_n 112._o and_o contra_fw-la adamantium_fw-la manichaeum_fw-la cap._n 28._o gregory_n moral_n 11.12_o all_o aim_n at_o this_o mark_n that_o they_o be_v rapti_fw-la or_o in_o a_o ecstasy_n none_o deni_v but_o there_o be_v a_o double_a ecstasy_n the_o first_o either_o from_o outward_a and_o inward_a sense_n the_o mind_n remain_v more_o enlighten_v and_o free_a and_o perfect_a thus_o be_v they_o sometime_o in_o a_o ecstasy_n second_o there_o be_v a_o ecstasy_n from_o the_o mind_n itself_o when_o it_o understand_v not_o thus_o they_o be_v never_o in_o a_o ecstasy_n so_o philo_n judaeus_n in_o his_o book_n quis_fw-la rerum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la haeres_fw-la cyril_n lib._n 8._o in_o joannem_fw-la cap._n 3._o perdidit_fw-la 3._o non_fw-la ad_fw-la prophetae_fw-la rationem_fw-la id_fw-la semper_fw-la exigit●r_n &_o necessarium_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la quae_fw-la sutura_fw-la denuntiat_fw-la intelligat_fw-la habuit_fw-la daviel_n complures_fw-la visiones_fw-la quas_fw-la primum_fw-la non_fw-la intellexit_fw-la sed_fw-la ab_fw-la angelo_n postea_fw-la est_fw-la edoctus_fw-la &_o nomen_fw-la prophetae_fw-la non_fw-la perdidit_fw-la it_o be_v not_o always_o necessary_a that_o a_o prophet_n shall_v understand_v whatsoever_o he_o foretell_v daniel_n have_v many_o vision_n which_o at_o the_o first_o he_o understand_v not_o but_o be_v after_o teach_v by_o a_o angel_n and_o yet_o he_o forfeit_v not_o the_o name_n of_o a_o prophet_n i_o answer_v with_o hierom_n on_o daniel_n 10._o they_o do_v know_v what_o the_o thing_n signify_v though_o they_o be_v not_o present_o enlighten_v danielem_fw-la enlighten_v ut_fw-la per_fw-la moram_fw-la occasio_fw-la daretur_fw-la anepliùs_fw-la deum_fw-la deprecandi_fw-la &_o lacrymis_fw-la &_o je_fw-fr junio_fw-la invocandi_fw-la deum_fw-la ut_fw-la mitteret_fw-la augelum_fw-la suum_fw-la qui_fw-la docere●_n danielem_fw-la that_o upon_o the_o delay_n occasion_n may_v be_v minister_v unto_o they_o to_o pray_v often_o and_o more_o unto_o god_n and_o with_o tear_n and_o fast_a call_n upon_o he_o that_o god_n will_v send_v his_o angel_n to_o instruct_v daniel_n so_o that_o every_o prophet_n know_v what_o word_n he_o speak_v and_o know_v the_o literal_a meaning_n of_o every_o word_n but_o the_o spiritual_a meaning_n they_o understand_v not_o at_o the_o first_o or_o present_o but_o afterward_o so_o zacharie_n see_v many_o thing_n and_o know_v they_o not_o but_o ask_v the_o angel_n zach._n 6.4_o what_o be_v these_o my_o lord_n
and_o 1.9_o o_o my_o lord_n what_o be_v these_o and_o 4.5_o 6._o know_v thou_o not_o what_o these_o thing_n be_v and_o i_o say_v no_o my_o lord_n then_o he_o answer_v and_o speak_v unto_o i_o say_v this_o be_v etc._n etc._n see_v the_o like_a in_o the_o 13_o and_o 14_o verse_n pharaoh_n nabuchodonosor_n and_o caiaphas_n do_v apprehend_v but_o not_o understand_v thing_n divine_a prophet_n understand_v almost_o always_o say_v castrus_n always_o say_v i_o within_o a_o short_a while_n so_o that_o they_o be_v never_o leave_v whole_o nescient_fw-la of_o what_o they_o prophesy_v aquinas_n 2_o 2_o ae_z quaest_n 173._o artic_a 4._o come_v home_n to_o i_o in_o the_o question_n propound_v and_o in_o the_o close_a though_o he_o hold_v somewhat_o aloof_o in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o article_n his_o quaere_fw-la be_v vtrùm_fw-la prophetae_fw-la semper_fw-la cognoscant_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la prophetant_fw-la whether_o the_o prophet_n always_o understand_v all_o thing_n which_o they_o prophesy_v and_o at_o first_o he_o resolve_v cognoscere_fw-la resolve_v non_fw-la oportet_fw-la prophetas_fw-la quaeeunque_fw-la praedicun●_n cognoscere_fw-la it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v know_v whatsoever_o they_o foretell_v i_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o it_o and_o the_o non_fw-la oportet_fw-la make_v another_o distinct_a question_n but_o against_o my_o position_n detur_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d give_v i_o one_o instance_n he_o prove_v it_o by_o caiaphas_n who_o know_v not_o what_o he_o prophesy_v it_o be_v answer_v before_o he_o be_v no_o prophet_n though_o he_o speak_v a_o prophetical_a sentence_n no_o more_o than_o balaams_n ass_n be_v a_o man_n because_o he_o once_o discourse_v more_o wise_o than_o his_o master_n aquinas_n add_v and_o that_o true_o that_o the_o spirit_n move_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o soldier_n to_o part_n christ_n garment_n but_o they_o know_v not_o what_o it_o signify_v but_o this_o be_v far_o from_o our_o question_n for_o neither_o be_v they_o prophet_n nor_o speak_v any_o prophetical_a sentence_n but_o only_o fulfil_v one_o three_o argument_n he_o bring_v unanswerable_a for_o my_o opinion_n 1._o augustinus_n super_fw-la genes_n ad_fw-la literam_fw-la 12.9_o towards_o the_o beginning_n prophetat_fw-la beginning_n quibus_fw-la signa_fw-la per_fw-la aliquas_fw-la rerum_fw-la corporalium_fw-la similitudinet_fw-la demonstrabantur_fw-la i●_n spiritu_fw-la nisi_fw-la accessisset_fw-la mentis_fw-la officium_fw-la ut_fw-la etiam_fw-la intelligerentur_fw-la vondum_fw-la erat_fw-la prophetia_fw-la sed_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la intelliguntur_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la esse_fw-la incognita_fw-la ergò_fw-la propheta_fw-la non_fw-la ignorat_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la prophetat_fw-la who_o see_v by_o the_o spirit_n heavenly_a vision_n in_o and_o by_o the_o glass_n of_o bodily_a resemblance_n unless_o there_o be_v add_v also_o the_o use_n employment_n and_o office_n of_o the_o mind_n whereby_o those_o thing_n may_v be_v understand_v he_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o a_o prophet_n but_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v understand_v be_v not_o unknown_a therefore_o the_o prophet_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o what_o he_o prophesi_v 2._o ignorare_fw-la 2._o majus_n est_fw-la lumen_fw-la prophetiae_fw-la quàm_fw-la lumen_fw-la naturalis_fw-la rationis_fw-la sed_fw-la quicunque_fw-la lumine_fw-la naturali_fw-la habet_fw-la scientiam_fw-la non_fw-la ignorat_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la scit_fw-la ●rgò_fw-la quicunque_fw-la lumine_fw-la prophetico_fw-la aliqua_fw-la enuntiat_fw-la non_fw-la pete_v ea_fw-la ignorare_fw-la great_a and_o bright_a be_v the_o divine_a light_n of_o pprophecy_n than_o the_o light_n of_o natural_a reason_n but_o by_o natural_a reason_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o know_v therefore_o whosoever_o be_v inspire_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o prophesi_v of_o 3._o enuntiat_fw-la 3._o pr●phe●ia_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la ad_fw-la homanum_fw-la illuminationem_fw-la vnde_fw-la dicitur_fw-la 7._o pet._n 1.19_o habemus_fw-la propheticum_fw-la sermonem_fw-la cui_fw-la benef_n acitis_n attendentes_fw-la quasi_fw-la lucernae_fw-la lugenti_fw-la in_o galjoinoso_n loco_fw-la sed_fw-la nihil_fw-la potest_fw-la alios_fw-la illuminare_fw-la nisi_fw-la in_o se_fw-la sit_fw-la illuminatum_fw-la ergò_fw-la videtur_fw-la quòd_fw-la propheta_fw-la prius_fw-la illuminetur_fw-la ad_fw-la cognoscendum_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la aliis_fw-la enuntiat_fw-la prophecy_n be_v ordain_v as_o a_o mean_n to_o instruct_v and_o inlighten_v man_n understanding_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v 2._o pet._n 1.19_o we_o have_v a_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n whereunto_o you_o do_v well_o that_o you_o take_v heed_n as_o unto_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n but_o nothing_o can_v irradiate_a or_o give_v light_n unto_o other_o that_o be_v not_o illuminate_v in_o itself_o therefore_o it_o seem_v that_o a_o prophet_n be_v first_o enlighten_v himself_o to_o know_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o fore-divineth_a to_o other_o his_o only_a answer_n to_o the_o objection_n be_v that_o the_o three_o reason_n speak_v of_o true_a prophet_n who_o mind_n be_v from_o heaven_n perfect_o enlighten_v which_o be_v whole_o my_o conclusion_n except_o he_o differ_v from_o i_o in_o this_o that_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o true_a prophet_n be_v not_o perfect_o enlighten_v in_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v prophesy_v which_o his_o word_n may_v insinuate_v and_o my_o opinion_n contradict_v it_o be_v true_a that_o faith_n be_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v hope_n be_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o have_v or_o enjoy_v prophecy_n be_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o but_o be_v to_o come_v and_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v as_o easy_o know_v lumine_fw-la prophetico_fw-la by_o the_o light_n of_o pprophecy_n as_o present_a colour_n be_v discern_v lumine_fw-la naturali_fw-la by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n but_o that_o pprophecy_n be_v of_o thing_n hide_v from_o the_o true_a prophet_n evince_v that_o a_o prophet_n and_o a_o seer_n be_v not_o all_o one_o and_o what_o i_o say_v concern_v whatsoever_o the_o prophet_n speak_v or_o write_v i_o say_v also_o of_o all_o other_o penman_n of_o holy_a scripture_n they_o know_v what_o they_o speak_v they_o know_v what_o they_o write_v even_o s._n paul_n that_o hear_v unspeakable_a word_n which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o utter_v 2._o cor._n 12.4_o out_o of_o doubt_n understand_v whatsoever_o be_v say_v unto_o he_o he_o say_v not_o he_o hear_v word_n that_o he_o can_v not_o understand_v but_o word_n unspeakable_a three_o objection_n follow_v two_o bring_v by_o castrus_n but_o not_o answer_v the_o three_o be_v draw_v from_o divers_a passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n object_n 1._o augustine_n de_fw-fr civit._fw-la 7.33_o say_v intelligebant_fw-la say_v prophetae_fw-la quaedam_fw-la intelligebant_fw-la quaedam_fw-la non_fw-la intelligebant_fw-la the_o prophet_n do_v understand_v some_o thing_n and_o not_o understand_v other_o thing_n it_o be_v true_a no_o one_o of_o they_o know_v all_o thing_n but_o some_o thing_n be_v reveal_v to_o one_o some_o to_o another_o in_o several_a time_n place_n manner_n and_o degree_n but_o augustine_n will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a prophet_n be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o they_o prophesy_v themselves_o and_o be_v to_o teach_v other_o elisha_n know_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o woman_n come_v to_o he_o 2._o king_n 4.27_o and_o till_o the_o minstrel_n play_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v not_o on_o he_o 2._o king_n 3.15_o but_o the_o same_o elisha_n know_v not_o only_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o also_o thing_n contingent_a and_o which_o do_v never_o come_v to_o pass_v whereas_o joas_n smite_v but_o thrice_o upon_o the_o ground_n elisha_n know_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n that_o if_o joas_n have_v smite_v five_o or_o six_o time_n then_o have_v he_o smite_v syria_n till_o he_o have_v consume_v it_o 2._o king_n 13.19_o now_o let_v any_o one_o think_v the_o prophet_n to_o be_v parcell-ignorant_a in_o their_o own_o prophecy_n i_o will_v not_o object_n 2._o ambrose_n de_fw-fr abraham_n 1.8_o say_v abraham_n prophesy_v he_o know_v not_o what_o when_o he_o speak_v to_o his_o young_a man_n gen._n 22.5_o abide_v you_o here_o with_o the_o ass_n and_o i_o and_o the_o lad_n will_v go_v yonder_o and_o worship_n and_o come_v again_o to_o you_o melchior_n canus_n de_fw-fr locis_fw-la theologicis_fw-la 2.4_o in_o initio_fw-la say_v sunt_fw-la alii_fw-la quibus_fw-la ego_fw-la uchementer_fw-la assentior_fw-la qui_fw-la admittunt_fw-la abraham_n mentitum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la other_o admit_v that_o abraham_n tell_v a_o lie_n to_o who_o i_o strong_o adhere_v i_o answer_v in_o general_a canus_n have_v do_v better_a if_o he_o have_v follow_v they_o mentitum_fw-la they_o qui_fw-fr piè_fw-fr gravitérque_fw-la contendunt_fw-la abraham_n non_fw-la esse_fw-la mentitum_fw-la who_o religious_o and_o grave_o contend_v as_o himself_o speak_v that_o abraham_n lie_v not_o i_o answer_v more_o particular_o the_o plural_a may_v be_v use_v for_o the_o singular_a or_o he_o may_v think_v reserve_o if_o god_n will_v if_o we_o both_o live_v
the_o inspiration_n make_v the_o record_n divine_a and_o his_o testimony_n from_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o see_v be_v of_o more_o force_n than_o his_o testimony_n can_v be_v to_o the_o spirit_n what_o he_o see_v it_o seem_v good_a unto_o i_o say_v s._n luke_n but_o it_o be_v make_v to_o seem_v good_a unto_o he_o by_o the_o spirit_n yea_o first_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o like_a case_n say_v act._n 15.28_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o the_o word_n do_v not_o notify_v the_o please_a of_o his_o own_o fancy_n without_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v i._o and_o the_o understanding_n that_o he_o have_v of_o thing_n from_o the_o first_o be_v not_o by_o sight_n for_o he_o be_v not_o then_o call_v nor_o by_o humane_a relation_n for_o that_o may_v be_v mistake_v increase_v or_o decrease_v or_o subject_n to_o error_n but_o the_o knowledge_n issue_v out_o from_o the_o light_a divine_a and_o therefore_o be_v there_o term_v perfect_a understanding_n like_o god_n gift_n james_n 1.17_o all_o other_o guide_n be_v somewhat_o imperfect_a three_o the_o jesuit_n be_v just_o unblamable_a for_o say_v the_o spirit_n need_v not_o tell_v they_o what_o they_o know_v before_o i_o say_v they_o may_v have_v forget_v or_o mistake_v some_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v man_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n they_o may_v know_v more_o certain_o what_o they_o know_v before_o more_o doubt_o and_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n they_o may_v know_v some_o circumstance_n more_o than_o before_o they_o know_v what_o they_o know_v humane_o they_o now_o know_v divine_o i_o will_v not_o discuss_v the_o question_n at_o large_a whether_o the_o law_n write_v by_o the_o hand_n and_o finger_n of_o god_n immediate_o be_v to_o be_v regard_v above_o other_o thing_n divine_o inspire_v into_o holy_a man_n and_o write_v by_o they_o this_o i_o will_v say_v that_o if_o i_o be_v ascertain_v that_o i_o see_v the_o very_a table_n the_o latter_a table_n of_o stone_n which_o god_n himself_o write_v or_o if_o i_o have_v see_v any_o thing_n which_o christ_n himself_o have_v write_v for_o i_o will_v not_o say_v he_o write_v nothing_o and_o i_o know_v he_o can_v write_v i_o shall_v prefer_v they_o somewhat_o above_o whatsoever_o shall_v be_v transcribe_v or_o write_v by_o any_o other_o whosoever_o and_o this_o be_v my_o reason_n though_o moses_n his_o writing_n be_v inspire_v and_o dictate_v from_o god_n yet_o he_o place_v they_o in_o the_o side_n of_o the_o ark_n deut._n 31.26_o a_o place_n not_o altogether_o so_o noble_a see_v cajetan_n on_o heb._n 9_o but_o the_o table_n and_o only_o the_o table_n write_v by_o god_n own_o finger_n be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o ark_n itself_o as_o appear_v 1._o king_n 8.9_o and_o 2._o chron._n 5.10_o howsoever_o afterward_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v a_o change_n hebr._n 9.4_o at_o length_n i_o be_o come_v to_o the_o five_o conclusion_n which_o beat_v direct_o upon_o the_o learned_a heinsius_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v this_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o penman_n of_o the_o divine_a writ_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o point_n of_o conceive_v and_o write_v in_o different_a language_n which_o in_o this_o manner_n i_o do_v explain_v if_o i_o demand_v of_o the_o worthy_a heinsius_n in_o what_o tongue_n the_o old_a testament_n be_v conceive_v his_o answer_n be_v peremptory_a prolegom_n pag._n 26._o linguâ_fw-la 26._o hebraeâ_fw-la ac_fw-la chaldaeâ_fw-la conceptum_fw-la est_fw-la linguâ_fw-la it_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o chaldee_n language_n it_o have_v be_v clear_a if_o he_o have_v use_v some_o disjunctive_a rather_o than_o a_o copulative_a preposition_n for_o none_o will_v imagine_v that_o the_o skilful_a heinsius_n do_v ever_o mean_a that_o all_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v conceive_v both_o in_o hebrew_n and_o in_o chaldee_n to_o which_o his_o word_n seem_v to_o incline_v but_o either_o in_o hebrew_n or_o in_o chaldee_n be_v it_o conceive_v and_o they_o who_o write_v in_o hebrew_n conceive_v in_o hebrew_n and_o they_o who_o write_v in_o chaldee_n conceive_v in_o chaldee_n i_o do_v not_o think_v but_o he_o will_v thus_o have_v express_v himself_o and_o explain_v his_o own_o meaning_n if_o he_o have_v be_v put_v unto_o it_o whereupon_o i_o discourse_v in_o this_o manner_n jeremy_n write_v somewhat_o in_o chaldee_n and_o daniel_n write_v some_o chapter_n if_o they_o be_v hebrew_n or_o jew_n by_o generation_n and_o birth_n and_o perfect_a in_o their_o mother-tongue_n ready_a scribe_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n as_o well_o as_o ezra_n ezra_n 7.6_o do_v yet_o conceive_v in_o the_o chaldee_n that_o chaldee_n which_o they_o write_v which_o the_o ingenuous_a heinsius_n will_v not_o deny_v for_o what_o be_v conceive_v in_o chaldee_n if_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o chaldee_n be_v not_o so_o conceive_v why_o do_v not_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n though_o they_o be_v bear_v and_o breed_v in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o syriack_n conceive_v in_o greek_a what_o they_o write_v in_o greek_a what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o discriminate_a they_o so_o that_o the_o penman_n of_o the_o old_a shall_v conceive_v and_o write_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o language_n the_o chaldee_n in_o chaldee_n and_o hebrew_n in_o hebrew_n and_o not_o the_o penman_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o they_o forsooth_o must_v conceive_v in_o syriack_n and_o write_v or_o dictate_v in_o greek_a especial_o since_o all_o of_o they_o conceive_v and_o write_v by_o the_o inspiration_n and_o dictate_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n either_o let_v he_o make_v the_o forename_a passage_n of_o the_o chaldee_n language_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v conceive_v in_o hebrew_n though_o write_v in_o chaldee_n and_o so_o none_o at_o all_o to_o be_v conceive_v in_o chaldee_n or_o let_v he_o equal_v the_o penman_n of_o the_o new_a law_n to_o those_o of_o the_o old_a in_o this_o point_n that_o they_o write_v in_o the_o selfsame_a tongue_n in_o which_o they_o conceive_v beside_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o prove_v that_o jeremy_n ever_o know_v any_o part_n of_o the_o chaldean_a language_n till_o that_o very_a verse_n be_v inspire_v into_o he_o and_o so_o with_o it_o both_o the_o knowledge_n and_o the_o word_n and_o the_o power_n both_o of_o pronunciation_n and_o of_o writing_n so_o that_o jeremy_n can_v not_o possible_o conceive_v and_o utter_v also_o the_o chaldee_n in_o the_o hebrew_n but_o conceive_v that_o verse_n in_o chaldee_n and_o in_o chaldee_n pronounce_v or_o write_v it_o a_o second_o error_n in_o the_o learned_a heinsius_n pag._n 49._o prolegom_n be_v this_o est_fw-la this_o quare_fw-la ad_fw-la allusiones_fw-la non_fw-la quae_fw-la extant_a sed_fw-la quas_fw-la animo_fw-la conceperat_fw-la joannes_n eundum_fw-la est_fw-la wherefore_o we_o must_v rest_v not_o on_o the_o allusion_n which_o now_o be_v but_o which_o s._n john_n conceive_v in_o his_o mind_n against_o which_o i_o set_v down_o the_o second_o conclusion_n viz._n we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o allusion_n which_o be_v s._n john_n be_v sol_n evangelii_n the_o light_n the_o sunshine_n the_o very_a sun_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o dionysius_n term_v he_o this_o sun_n be_v in_o eclipse_n and_o we_o have_v not_o can_v have_v his_o true_a and_o perfect_a light_n if_o we_o must_v not_o look_v to_o his_o ray_n and_o shine_v which_o be_v his_o word_n but_o to_o his_o thought_n that_o be_v the_o light_n which_o be_v in_o himself_o to_o his_o internal_a and_o substantial_a light_n and_o not_o to_o the_o external_a the_o certain_a rule_n be_v most_o to_o be_v trust_v unto_o therefore_o let_v we_o not_o go_v from_o the_o word_n and_o extant_a allusion_n which_o we_o know_v to_o the_o thought_n of_o s._n john_n which_o we_o know_v not_o for_o who_o know_v the_o thought_n of_o a_o man_n save_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o he_o 1._o cor._n 2.11_o and_o if_o the_o finite_a thought_n of_o every_o man_n be_v unknown_a can_v the_o thought_n of_o he_o who_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o infinite_a spirit_n be_v so_o soon_o and_o so_o easy_o know_v moreover_o the_o same_o word_n write_v in_o greek_a may_v be_v conceive_v two_o or_o three_o way_n in_o the_o syriack_n for_o variation_n be_v in_o that_o language_n and_o different_a expression_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o which_o of_o those_o shall_v we_o think_v be_v the_o conceit_n of_o s._n john_n and_o when_o we_o have_v light_v on_o divers_a and_o all_o of_o they_o good_a expression_n of_o syriack_n yet_o the_o spirit_n may_v guide_v s._n john_n to_o a_o other_o which_o we_o never_o think_v upon_o and_o so_o we_o be_v for_o ever_o uncertain_a what_o allusion_n s._n john_n conceive_v in_o his_o thought_n for_o he_o
bill_n of_o divorcement_n or_o separation_n for_o of_o this_o christ_n speak_v express_o mat._n 19.9_o mark_v 10.11_o luk._n 16.18_o therefore_o s._n paul_n command_v not_o but_o the_o lord_n namely_o christ_n in_o those_o place_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o which_o he_o aim_v the_o three_o objection_n be_v out_o of_o the_o 1._o cor._n 7.12_o to_o the_o rest_n speak_v i_o not_o the_o lord_n these_o word_n compare_v with_o the_o former_a may_v seem_v to_o carry_v it_o clear_a against_o i_o for_o what_o can_v be_v of_o more_o force_n i_o command_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n speak_v i_o not_o the_o lord_n as_o if_o s._n paul_n speak_v and_o write_v something_o by_o humane_a wisdom_n which_o the_o lord_n bid_v he_o not_o first_o i_o answer_v with_o peter_n martyr_n s._n paul_n say_v thus_o because_o before_o he_o have_v reference_n to_o christ_n speech_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o not_o easy_o dissolve_v matrimony_n but_o now_o he_o set_v down_o somewhat_o of_o which_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o find_v to_o have_v say_v any_o thing_n so_o now_o he_o speak_v not_o the_o lord_n namely_o not_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n not_o christ_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o he_o be_v man_n and_o yet_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n we_o may_v as_o true_o say_v even_o in_o this_o place_n and_o to_o s._n paul_n proper_a sense_n with_o the_o word_n invert_v the_o lord_n speak_v not_o i_o not_o i_o of_o myself_o not_o i_o as_o a_o man_n but_o god_n from_o heaven_n or_o the_o holy_a spirit_n speak_v the_o conclusion_n be_v s._n paul_n speak_v or_o write_v nothing_o as_o a_o apostle_n from_o himself_o without_o the_o lord_n without_o divine_a immediate_a revelation_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o he_o may_v relate_v something_o which_o christ_n speak_v not_o while_o christ_n live_v on_o earth_n something_o that_o be_v not_o register_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o thus_o s._n paul_n do_v speak_v and_o not_o the_o lord_n and_o thus_o may_v a_o other_o speak_v or_o write_v and_o not_o the_o lord_n superius_fw-la lord_n ego_fw-la dico_fw-la non_fw-la dominus_fw-la nunquid_fw-la dominus_fw-la non_fw-la loquebatur_fw-la per_fw-la eum●vtique_fw-la sed_fw-la ideo_fw-la dixit_fw-la se_fw-la dicere_fw-la &_o non_fw-la dominum_fw-la quia_fw-la hoc_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la non_fw-la continetur_fw-la in_o evangelio_n dictum_fw-la à_fw-fr '_o domino_fw-la sicut_fw-la illud_fw-la superius_fw-la i_o speak_v not_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o the_o lord_n speak_v by_o he_o yes_o but_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o himself_o speak_v and_o not_o the_o lord_n because_o this_o precept_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o any_o of_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o other_o be_v say_v haymo_n before_o peter_n martyr_n and_o indeed_o i_o remember_v not_o that_o christ_n so_o much_o as_o touch_v at_o this_o point_n whether_o a_o believe_a man_n shall_v put_v away_o or_o dwell_v from_o a_o unbelieved_a woman_n yea_o or_o no_o to_o the_o four_o objection_n 1._o cor._n 7.25_o i_o have_v no_o commandment_n from_o the_o lord_n yet_o i_o give_v my_o judgement_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v matter_n of_o counsel_n not_o of_o precept_n it_o be_v leave_v indifferent_a the_o do_v or_o not_o do_v have_v not_o be_v sin_n nuptias_fw-la sin_n noluit_fw-la deus_fw-la de_fw-la virginitate_fw-la &_o coelibatu_fw-la praecipere_fw-la quia_fw-la visus_fw-la fuisset_fw-la damnare_fw-la nuptias_fw-la christ_n will_v give_v no_o command_n concern_v single_a life_n or_o virginity_n lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o condemn_v marriage_n so_o augustine_n in_o libello_fw-la de_fw-fr sanct_a virginit_fw-la so_o hierom_n against_o jovinian_n so_o ambrose_n say_v peter_n martyr_n yet_o the_o consilium_fw-la do_v i_o counsel_n be_v the_o advice_n of_o such_o a_o one_o as_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v faithful_a and_o a_o faithful_a steward_n will_v not_o distribute_v more_o or_o less_o than_o his_o lord_n appoint_v the_o unjust_a steward_n make_v they_o write_v less_o than_o be_v due_a the_o usurer_n make_v they_o write_v more_o the_o good_a and_o faithful_a man_n follow_v his_o master_n will_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d foot_n by_o foot_n so_o this_o place_n prove_v not_o that_o the_o apostle_n as_o a_o apostle_n write_v or_o speak_v by_o humane_a wisdom_n any_o thing_n but_o what_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n the_o rhemist_n on_o verse_n 12_o say_v by_o this_o we_o learn_v that_o there_o be_v many_o matter_n over_o and_o above_o the_o thing_n that_o christ_n teach_v or_o prescribe_v leave_v to_o the_o apostle_n order_n and_o interpretation_n wherein_o they_o may_v as_o the_o case_n require_v either_o command_n or_o counsel_n and_o we_o bind_v to_o obey_v according_o doctor_n estius_n go_v further_a praecepit_fw-la further_a satìs_fw-la autem_fw-la insinuat_fw-la hic_fw-la sermo_fw-la praecipio_fw-la non_fw-la ego_fw-la sed_fw-la dominus_fw-la apostolos_fw-la &_o eorum_fw-la successores_fw-la posse_fw-la quaedam_fw-la praecipere_fw-la quae_fw-la christus_fw-la ipse_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la non_fw-la praecepit_fw-la this_o speech_n i_o command_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o the_o lord_n do_v sufficient_o evidence_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n can_v command_v something_o which_o christ_n himself_o by_o himself_o command_v not_o both_o of_o they_o run_v awry_o in_o one_o extreme_a doctor_n fulk_n answer_v to_o that_o place_n of_o the_o rhemist_n the_o apostle_n have_v not_o particular_a precept_n for_o every_o case_n but_o they_o have_v general_a rule_n in_o christ_n doctrine_n which_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o follow_v in_o their_o precept_n and_o counsel_n i_o think_v he_o approach_v too_o nigh_o unto_o they_o unless_o he_o mean_v that_o both_o their_o precept_n and_o counsel_n have_v the_o divine_a dictate_v to_o guide_v they_o especial_o in_o thing_n which_o they_o write_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v they_o have_v not_o particular_a precept_n for_o every_o case_n i_o say_v they_o have_v for_o all_o case_n necessary_a especial_o concern_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o their_o general_a rule_n may_v rather_o be_v for_o guide_a matter_n of_o order_n and_o discipline_n then_o of_o doctrine_n for_o he_o that_o promise_v to_o lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n will_v not_o leave_v they_o in_o the_o frame_n of_o particular_n as_o he_o do_v we_o and_o other_o man_n who_o out_o of_o general_n do_v deduce_v these_o and_o these_o special_n for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a distance_n and_o traverse_n to_o be_v place_v between_o those_o sacred_a penman_n and_o other_o succeed_a expositor_n of_o holy_a writ_n and_o s._n paul_n do_v imply_v that_o even_o his_o judgement_n or_o counsel_n be_v according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o bishop_n andrews_n well_o observe_v and_o now_o come_v to_o be_v handle_v the_o five_o objection_n be_v verse_n 40_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n where_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o my_o judgement_n he_o add_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o think_v also_o that_o i_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n minus_n dicit_fw-la plus_fw-la volens_fw-la intelligi_fw-la he_o speak_v spare_o but_o will_v be_v understand_v more_o large_o say_v i._o so_o verse_n 26_o i_o suppose_v and_o 1._o cor._n 4.9_o i_o think_v that_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o we_o the_o apostle_n last_o scio_fw-la last_o puto_fw-la autem_fw-la sobriè_fw-fr loquor_fw-la minúsque_fw-la dicit_fw-la &_o majus_fw-la significat_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la sensus_fw-la certò_fw-la scio_fw-la i_o think_v he_o speak_v sober_o signify_v more_o than_o he_o speak_v and_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o know_v certain_o say_v dionysius_n carthus_n with_o who_o accord_v primasius_n do_v not_o think_v that_o i_o speak_v what_o i_o do_v of_o myself_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o i_o significat_fw-la i_o futo_fw-la non_fw-la dubietatem_fw-la significat_fw-la the_o word_n i_o think_v be_v not_o wrap_v about_o with_o doubtfulness_n peter_n martyr_n think_v it_o be_v a_o irony_n against_o the_o false_a apostle_n who_o traduce_v s._n paul_n as_o unworthy_a to_o be_v a_o apostle_n and_o then_o the_o irony_n have_v as_o full_a force_n as_o if_o he_o have_v peremptory_o avouch_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v in_o i_o and_o by_o it_o i_o write_v what_o i_o write_v other_o objection_n may_v be_v make_v as_o the_o 2._o cor._n 11.17_o i_o speak_v it_o not_o after_o the_o lord_n but_o as_o it_o be_v foolish_o in_o this_o confidence_n of_o boast_v therefore_o not_o only_o humane_a wisdom_n but_o humane_a infirmity_n may_v seem_v to_o challenge_v part_n both_o in_o his_o word_n and_o writing_n it_o be_v answer_v in_o a_o few_o word_n of_o dionysius_n carthusianus_n non_fw-la loquor_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la loqui_fw-la non_fw-la videor_fw-la that_o be_v it_o seem_v not_o so_o to_o some_o though_o myself_o know_v the_o contrary_n other_o may_v object_v 1._o cor._n 9.8_o say_v i_o these_o thing_n as_o a_o man_n or_o say_v not_o the_o law_n
the_o same_o also_o i_o answer_v that_o he_o may_v speak_v or_o write_v some_o thing_n like_o a_o other_o man_n some_o thing_n unexpressed_a in_o their_o law_n but_o now_o he_o speak_v or_o write_v for_o they_o be_v both_o one_o sense_n in_o this_o notion_n as_o a_o apostle_n who_o therefore_o be_v equal_o to_o be_v regard_v as_o a_o penman_n of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n with_o moses_n a_o penman_n of_o the_o law_n leviticall_a it_o may_v yet_o be_v object_v what_o s._n john_n say_v 2._o epist_n vers_fw-la 12._o have_v many_o thing_n to_o write_v unto_o you_o i_o will_v not_o write_v with_o paper_n and_o ink_n and_o 3._o epist_n john_n ver_fw-la 13._o i_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o write_v but_o i_o will_v not_o with_o ink_n and_o pen_n write_v unto_o thou_o from_o whence_o a_o power_n seem_v to_o be_v whole_o leave_v in_o he_o both_o whether_o he_o will_v write_v or_o no_o and_o what_o he_o will_v write_v i_o answer_v to_o both_o place_n if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o have_v write_v any_o thing_n without_o or_o beyond_o the_o spirit_n or_o what_o he_o be_v bid_v not_o to_o write_v he_o have_v speak_v home_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o these_o word_n do_v not_o imply_v that_o he_o have_v either_o power_n or_o will_v to_o write_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o own_o head_n or_o by_o the_o wisdom_n or_o learning_n of_o man_n but_o they_o full_o evidence_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v suggest_v many_o thing_n unto_o he_o which_o the_o same_o bless_a spirit_n will_v not_o have_v he_o to_o write_v as_o be_v fit_a perhaps_o to_o be_v deliver_v face_n to_o face_n and_o not_o concern_v posterity_n if_o i_o know_v any_o more_o opposite_a argument_n i_o will_v endeavour_v their_o answer_n the_o positive_a proof_n i_o refer_v to_o the_o last_o point_n of_o all_o it_o be_v the_o very_a main_a hinge_n of_o the_o controversy_n only_o consider_v this_o one_o thing_n the_o scripture_n have_v a_o privilege_n above_o all_o other_o writing_n aquinas_n on_o 2._o timoth._n 3.15_o give_v this_o reason_n divina_fw-la reason_n quia_fw-la aliae_fw-la traditae_fw-la sunt_fw-la per_fw-la rationem_fw-la bumanam_fw-la sacra_fw-la autem_fw-la scriptura_fw-la est_fw-la divina_fw-la because_o other_o writing_n savour_v of_o humane_a reason_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v divine_a where_o he_o exclude_v the_o prudence_n of_o man_n from_o compose_v any_o scripture_n if_o any_o earthly_a wisdom_n write_v any_o part_n of_o it_o it_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v account_v our_o scripture_n let_v this_o suffice_v for_o the_o three_o conclusion_n concern_v the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o the_o holy_a penman_n have_v no_o liberty_n leave_v they_o to_o put_v in_o their_o own_o conceit_n or_o in_o write_v to_o add_v or_o blot_v out_o what_o they_o have_v do_v whereby_o all_o humane_a literature_n and_o wisdom_n be_v remove_v from_o share_a part_n in_o the_o holy_a writ_n the_o four_o conclusion_n follow_v concern_v the_o manner_n of_o writing_n viz._n they_o have_v no_o liberty_n to_o clothe_v their_o inward_a apprehension_n with_o word_n of_o their_o own_o either_o all_o the_o penman_n have_v the_o liberty_n or_o none_o the_o disjunction_n stand_v upon_o a_o da_fw-la tertium_fw-la give_v i_o a_o reason_n why_o some_o shall_v and_o not_o other_o who_o be_v these_o some_o and_o why_o those_o but_o all_o have_v not_o liberty_n for_o the_o very_a word_n be_v dictate_v unto_o some_o of_o they_o ergò_fw-la etc._n etc._n either_o every_o penman_n do_v apparel_n his_o understanding_n with_o word_n of_o his_o own_o throughout_o all_o and_o every_o of_o his_o own_o writing_n or_o it_o be_v practise_v in_o some_o place_n only_o if_o so_o then_o again_o i_o inquire_v what_o place_n they_o be_v and_o why_o those_o have_v a_o especial_a privilege_n above_o other_o s._n john_n indeed_o be_v bid_v to_o write_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v see_v and_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v and_o the_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o revel_v 1.19_o i_o answer_v this_o general_a command_n evince_v not_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o administer_v as_o well_o the_o word_n as_o the_o matter_n if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o the_o evangelicall_n prophet_n isaiah_n and_o the_o psalmograph_n and_o some_o other_o be_v most_o eloquent_a in_o the_o old_a and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o belove_a disciple_n s._n john_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o eagle_n for_o his_o lofty_a flight_n and_o s._n paul_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v bring_v some_o of_o the_o three_o heaven_n down_o with_o he_o so_o heavenly_a be_v he_o but_o amos_n and_o some_o other_o writ_n more_o plain_o in_o a_o homely_a style_n i_o answer_v if_o all_o this_o be_v true_a yet_o it_o prove_v not_o that_o any_o of_o they_o be_v leave_v to_o express_v as_o they_o will_v their_o own_o dream_n vision_n or_o illumination_n neither_o do_v they_o frame_v and_o fit_v their_o style_n to_o the_o spirit_n or_o their_o word_n to_o the_o matter_n nor_o indeed_o can_v they_o for_o what_o proportion_n be_v there_o between_o finite_a and_o infinite_a and_o how_o can_v the_o shallow_a capacity_n of_o man_n comprehend_v the_o depth_n of_o god_n god_n forbid_v the_o linsey-wolsey_n and_o to_o the_o divine_a truth_n will_v he_o suffer_v they_o to_o adapt_v humane_a expression_n how_o often_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v both_o the_o matter_n put_v into_o their_o heart_n and_o the_o manner_n with_o the_o word_n into_o their_o mouth_n and_o be_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n of_o less_o worth_n than_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n god_n forbid_v but_o whosoever_o read_v the_o prophet_n amos_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v undervalue_v shall_v find_v more_o in_o amos_n than_o amos_n more_o in_o he_o then_o in_o one_o among_o the_o herdsman_n of_o tekoa_n amos_n 1.1_o and_o shall_v hear_v the_o pierce_a language_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o other_o sometime_o perhaps_o attemper_v itself_o to_o the_o party_n writing_n and_o make_v both_o word_n and_o matter_n easy_a but_o at_o other_o time_n it_o rapt_v he_o above_o himself_o and_o make_v he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o prink_v it_o in_o lofty_a and_o almost_o undiscernible_a tower_a by_o infuse_v thing_n phrase_v sentence_n and_o dictate_v word_n above_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o meanness_n of_o his_o former_a call_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v and_o have_v suggest_v the_o very_a word_n very_o often_o i_o think_v none_o will_v deny_v that_o ever_o he_o permit_v they_o a_o liberty_n of_o many_o sentence_n of_o many_o phrase_n of_o many_o variation_n of_o word_n to_o choose_v what_o they_o like_v and_o to_o refuse_v the_o rest_n i_o think_v few_o ancient_a divine_n ever_o say_v before_o but_o to_o that_o effect_n say_v heinsius_n else_o what_o can_v his_o meaning_n be_v when_o he_o say_v s._n john_n see_v the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n and_o hellenist_n and_o have_v often_o reference_n to_o they_o and_o that_o divers_a thing_n be_v take_v from_o the_o targummim_n evangelista_n targummim_n ad_fw-la targumistas_n semper_fw-la respicit_fw-la evangelista_n the_o evangelist_n always_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o targumist_n say_v he_o pag._n 550._o if_o the_o noble_a heinsius_n have_v say_v in_o any_o one_o place_n which_o he_o do_v not_o so_o far_o as_o my_o remembrance_n now_o bear_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v guide_v s._n john_n to_o those_o author_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o targumist_n hellenist_n and_o chaldee_n paraphrast_n i_o shall_v have_v subscribe_v and_o sit_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n but_o when_o he_o so_o often_o appeal_v from_o the_o greek_a to_o the_o syriack_n and_o say_v s._n john_n be_v so_o conversant_a with_o the_o forename_a author_n he_o derogate_v in_o my_o opinion_n from_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n while_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v aught_o of_o it_o take_v from_o humane_a read_n or_o wisdom_n though_o of_o a_o apostle_n unless_o it_o be_v add_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n guide_v the_o apostle_n unto_o it_o and_o do_v dictate_v it_o unto_o he_o not_o as_o it_o be_v know_v before_o to_o the_o apostle_n but_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n think_v fit_a to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o and_o to_o sanctify_v that_o part_n of_o humane_a literature_n to_o dictate_v i_o say_v the_o word_n and_o syllable_n yea_o every_o letter_n and_o iota_fw-la and_o in_o the_o writing_n to_o guide_v their_o hand_n aright_o as_o a_o good_a master_n of_o write_v overspreadeth_a and_o over-ruleth_a the_o hand_n of_o his_o scholar_n and_o write_v what_o copy_n he_o please_v without_o reference_n or_o regard_n to_o the_o scholar_n former_a knowledge_n but_o rather_o to_o his_o future_a instruction_n this_o be_v that_o which_o against_o heinsius_n may_v be_v aver_v that_o though_o many_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o s._n john_n and_o other_o holy_a penman_n be_v before_o in_o the_o targum_fw-la talmud_n
as_o hierom_n style_v they_o will_v hardly_o believe_v 3._o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n 3.6_o draw_v the_o second_o and_o three_o part_n of_o his_o three_o demonstration_n from_o two_o place_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la the_o first_o be_v chap._n 48._o vers_fw-la 10._o who_o be_v ordain_v for_o reproof_n in_o their_o time_n to_o pacify_v the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n judgement_n before_o it_o break_v forth_o into_o fury_n and_o to_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n unto_o the_o son_n and_o to_o restore_v or_o establish_z the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n first_o i_o may_v answer_v ecclesiasticus_fw-la be_v not_o hold_v canonical_a but_o apocryphal_a even_o by_o such_o as_o for_o the_o many_o divine_a and_o admirable_a thing_n in_o that_o book_n can_v wish_v if_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n to_o wish_v that_o it_o be_v true_o canonical_a and_o apocryphal_o be_v not_o hold_v sufficient_a to_o settle_v a_o point_n of_o controversy_n second_o it_o may_v be_v also_o say_v that_o jansenius_n maintain_v this_o place_n evince_v not_o that_o elias_n shall_v come_v personal_o because_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la write_v according_a to_o the_o receive_a opinion_n of_o those_o time_n which_o from_o the_o word_n of_o malachi_n believe_v that_o elias_n be_v to_o come_v in_o his_o own_o proper_a person_n bellarmine_n reply_n upon_o jansenius_n be_v shallow_a in_o this_o point_n say_v scripsisse_fw-la say_v si_fw-mi it_o à_fw-fr est_fw-fr ut_fw-la jansenius_n dicit_fw-la sequitur_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la errâsse_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la scripsisse_fw-la if_o jansenius_n say_v truth_n it_o follow_v that_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la have_v err_v and_o write_v some_o false_a thing_n as_o if_o he_o who_o write_v the_o opinion_n of_o other_o may_v not_o relate_v a_o error_n and_o write_v false_a thing_n though_o he_o err_v not_o himself_o nor_o believe_v the_o false_a thing_n s._n matthew_n chap._n 2.6_o write_v what_o the_o jew_n say_v concern_v the_o place_n of_o christ_n birth_n the_o thing_n be_v miscit_v and_o yet_o no_o error_n or_o fault_n in_o s._n matthew_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n have_v write_v that_o the_o fool_n have_v say_v in_o his_o heart_n there_o be_v no_o god_n because_o the_o fool_n think_v foolish_o and_o untrue_o god_n forbid_v that_o we_o shall_v turn_v fool_n also_o and_o think_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v err_v because_o he_o true_o record_v a_o untrue_a opinion_n or_o a_o untrue_a thing_n true_a only_a in_o the_o relation_n this_o have_v i_o say_v to_o defend_v both_o jansenius_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la against_o bellarmine_n three_o i_o may_v answer_v only_o these_o last_o word_n have_v the_o shadow_n of_o a_o argument_n to_o restore_v or_o to_o establish_v the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n which_o because_o john_n do_v not_o do_v elias_n must_v do_v hereafter_o for_o indeed_o it_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n since_o as_o john_n the_o baptist_n do_v turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n unto_o the_o son_n as_o be_v before_o prove_v so_o he_o may_v be_v also_o say_v to_o establish_v or_o restore_v the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n not_o to_o any_o temporal_a kingdom_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v intend_v by_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la for_o in_o malachi_n there_o be_v altum_fw-la silentium_fw-la not_o a_o word_n speak_v concern_v this_o point_n but_o to_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n from_o which_o they_o be_v fall_v for_o he_o preach_v unto_o some_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o the_o two_o tribe_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n yea_o of_o the_o gentile_n there_o go_v out_o unto_o john_n jerusalem_n and_o all_o judea_n and_o all_o the_o region_n round_o about_o jordan_n mat._n 3.5_o and_o jordan_n divide_v galilee_n from_o judea_n yea_o christ_n himself_o come_v from_o galilee_n to_o john_n to_o be_v baptize_v matth._n 3.13_o and_o he_o teach_v both_o publican_n and_o soldier_n and_o herod_n and_o some_o of_o all_o sort_n thereabouts_o luk._n 3.13_o 14._o etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o do_v he_o restore_v or_o establish_v the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n the_o bishop_n bible_n have_v the_o controvert_v word_n thus_o to_o set_v up_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n so_o coverdale_n ut_fw-la constitueres_fw-la tribus_fw-la jacob_n say_v tremellius_n according_a to_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d translate_v also_o by_o the_o interlinearie_a ad_fw-la constituendum_fw-la or_o as_o vatablus_n ad_fw-la constituendas_fw-la tribus_fw-la jacob_n to_o establish_v the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n many_o be_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o no_o where_o do_v it_o signify_v to_o restore_v unto_o a_o disperse_a people_n their_o lose_a kingdom_n which_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o jewish_o affect_v nor_o be_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o expound_v otherwhere_o either_o in_o the_o septuagint_n or_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o in_o any_o classical_a author_n it_o be_v render_v usual_o by_o constituere_fw-la restituere_fw-la be_v a_o black_a swan_n but_o my_o own_o opinion_n be_v that_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la prophesi_v not_o what_o shall_v be_v thereafter_o viz._n after_o the_o day_n of_o his_o writing_n either_o concern_v john_n or_o elias_n but_o only_o relate_v what_o be_v pass_v and_o it_o be_v a_o eulogy_n and_o laudatorie_n of_o elias_n his_o worth_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o antecedent_n and_o consequent_a narrative_n where_o all_o run_v in_o term_n design_v out_o time_n pass_v and_o go_v none_o touch_v at_o the_o present_a tense_n or_o time_n much_o less_o at_o the_o future_a and_o so_o it_o can_v be_v no_o pprophecy_n concern_v elias_n personal_o to_o come_v hereafter_o especial_o since_o there_o be_v never_o a_o passage_n in_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la concern_v elias_n which_o elias_n do_v not_o accomplish_v before_o his_o assumption_n and_o more_o particular_o he_o reconcile_a god_n to_o his_o child_n the_o israelite_n and_o turn_v their_o heart_n to_o he_o thus_o do_v he_o restore_v or_o establish_v the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n in_o his_o time_n for_o 1._o king_n 18.21_o elias_n say_v unto_o all_o the_o people_n that_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o israel_n how_o long_o will_v you_o halt_v between_o two_o opinion_n if_o the_o lord_n be_v god_n follow_v he_o but_o if_o baal_n then_o follow_v he_o and_o then_o by_o miracle_n under_o god_n he_o establish_v they_o or_o restore_v the_o tribe_n to_o the_o right_a religion_n from_o which_o they_o be_v fall_v by_o idolatry_n the_o fall_n of_o all_o fall_v foul_a even_o bellarmine_n himself_o expound_v restituerunt_fw-la they_o restore_v by_o converterunt_fw-la they_o convert_v in_o this_o very_a chapter_n thus_o far_o true_o prove_v that_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o luther_n be_v not_o the_o enoch_n and_o elias_n prophesy_v of_o because_o elias_n be_v to_o convert_v the_o jew_n and_o indeed_o convert_v many_o as_o i_o prove_v before_o which_o neither_o luther_n nor_o zuinglius_fw-la do_v for_o aught_o that_o i_o have_v read_v 4._o the_o second_o place_n insist_v upon_o by_o bellarmine_n be_v ecclesiasticus_fw-la 44.16_o enoch_n be_v translate_v be_v a_o example_n of_o repentance_n to_o all_o generation_n the_o septuagint_n have_v it_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d translatus_fw-la est_fw-la exemplum_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la generationibus_fw-la he_o be_v translate_v be_v a_o example_n of_o repentance_n to_o follow_v generation_n say_v the_o interlinearie_a nationibus_fw-la to_o the_o nation_n say_v vatablus_n ut_fw-la det_fw-la gentibus_fw-la sapientiam_fw-la that_o he_o may_v give_v wisdom_n to_o the_o gentile_n say_v the_o vulgat_fw-la edition_n print_v by_o petrus_n santandreanus_n 1614_o and_o it_o have_v in_o the_o margin_n poenitentiam_fw-la repentance_n but_o to_o leave_v that_o variety_n the_o vulgat_fw-la be_v not_o proper_o translate_v for_o it_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d gentibus_fw-la to_o the_o gentile_n as_o oppose_v to_o the_o jew_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d posteris_fw-la or_o generationibus_fw-la to_o future_a posterity_n and_o if_o it_o be_v gentibus_fw-la as_o bellarmine_n read_v it_o yet_o it_o make_v the_o more_o against_o he_o who_o will_v have_v enoch_n and_o especial_o elias_n do_v great_a thing_n for_o the_o jew_n then_o for_o the_o gentile_n last_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o intend_v by_o any_o word_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la that_o enoch_n shall_v hereafter_o appear_v in_o the_o flesh_n personal_o and_o then_o die_v and_o be_v a_o example_n of_o repentance_n to_o the_o nation_n for_o after_o he_o have_v so_o long_o please_v god_n and_o walk_v with_o god_n in_o this_o world_n and_o after_o he_o be_v take_v by_o god_n from_o among_o man_n and_o no_o doubt_n much_o more_o then_o please_v god_n and_o walk_v with_o god_n if_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o into_o this_o world_n here_o to_o live_v shall_v he_o sin_v again_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o example_n of_o repentance_n the_o conceit_n be_v vast_a harsh_a and_o improbable_a if_o the_o
suggestion_n and_o inspiration_n then_o a_o proper_a command_n i_o reply_v of_o precept_n proper_o so_o call_v some_o be_v hide_v and_o secret_a other_o more_o manifest_a the_o internal_a command_n bind_v as_o much_o as_o the_o external_a divine_a suggestion_n oft_o time_n have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o express_a inward_a precept_n and_o command_n be_v sometime_o manifest_v by_o inspiration_n praeceptum_fw-la propriè_fw-la dictum_fw-la which_o be_v by_o word_n or_o writing_n and_o imperium_fw-la internum_fw-la may_v be_v equivalent_a and_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v imperium_fw-la internum_fw-la what_o need_v we_o care_v though_o it_o be_v not_o praeceptum_fw-la propriè_fw-la dictum_fw-la and_o the_o command_n be_v to_o write_v which_o be_v a_o outward_a act_n the_o second_o objection_n bring_v by_o bellarmine_n against_o himself_o be_v from_o the_o revelation_n where_o s._n john_n be_v command_v divers_a time_n to_o write_v to_o this_o he_o answer_v most_o unclerk-like_a that_o s._n john_n be_v command_v to_o write_v certain_a hide_a vision_n not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o precept_n of_o manner_n but_o this_o be_v easy_o confute_v for_o revel_v 19.9_o it_o be_v say_v write_v bless_a be_v they_o which_o be_v call_v to_o the_o marriage-supper_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v not_o this_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n what_o be_v more_o evangelicall_n he_o may_v have_v consider_v the_o marriage-feast_n in_o the_o gospel_n matth._n 22.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o luk._n 14.16_o and_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v revel_v 14.13_o write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o yea_o say_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o be_v these_o hide_a vision_n be_v not_o this_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o like_a may_v be_v amplify_v out_o of_o the_o first_o second_o and_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n where_o matter_n of_o morality_n and_o precept_n of_o manner_n be_v command_v to_o be_v write_v and_o be_v write_v and_o not_o hide_a vision_n but_o rather_o the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n christ_n say_v to_o his_o apostle_n act._n 1.8_o you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o he_o forbear_v the_o word_n of_o preach_v and_o use_v more_o general_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o shall_v be_v witness_n and_o they_o bare_a witness_n by_o writing_n joh._n 21.24_o this_o be_v the_o disciple_n which_o testify_v of_o these_o thing_n and_o write_v these_o thing_n and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o testimony_n be_v true_a not_o only_o he_o himself_o but_o peter_n and_o the_o rest_n we_o know_v that_o his_o testimony_n be_v true_a what_o testimony_n but_o his_o writing_n conciliare_fw-la writing_n toti_n operi_fw-la svo_fw-la fidem_fw-la vult_fw-la conciliare_fw-la he_o will_v have_v all_o his_o work_n or_o writing_n believe_v say_v luc._n brugensis_n and_o maldonate_fw-it when_o the_o seven_o thunder_n have_v utter_v their_o voice_n i_o be_v about_o to_o write_v say_v s._n john_n and_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v write_v they_o not_o revel_v 10.4_o the_o apostle_n forwardness_n or_o proneness_n to_o write_v argue_v not_o necessary_o that_o he_o be_v not_o command_v first_o to_o write_v but_o rather_o presuppose_v it_o and_o this_o present_a inhibition_n write_v not_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o exception_n to_o a_o former_a general_a command_n that_o he_o may_v have_v to_o write_v indeed_o there_o be_v no_o express_a record_n that_o all_o and_o every_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v enjoin_v to_o write_v nor_o be_v it_o likely_a they_o be_v for_o than_o they_o will_v have_v obey_v whereas_o not_o the_o one_o half_a of_o the_o apostle_n commit_v any_o thing_n to_o pen_n ink_n and_o paper_n for_o aught_o we_o know_v but_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o some_o writer_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v command_v to_o write_v exod._n 17.14_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n write_v this_o for_o a_o memorial_n in_o a_o book_n jerem._n 36.2_o take_v thou_o a_o roll_n of_o a_o book_n and_o write_v therein_o all_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o thou_o etc._n etc._n and_o s._n john_n be_v command_v eleven_o or_o twelve_o time_n to_o write_v and_o thence_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o write_v be_v command_v to_o write_v they_o may_v be_v express_o appoint_v to_o write_v though_o in_o their_o writing_n so_o much_o be_v not_o express_v to_o say_v as_o bellarmine_n do_v it_o be_v false_a that_o god_n command_v the_o apostle_n to_o write_v because_o so_o much_o be_v not_o write_v be_v rash_a and_o ill-advised_n infer_v that_o they_o be_v command_v nothing_o except_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v be_v every_o thing_n false_a that_o can_v be_v prove_v be_v nothing_o true_a but_o what_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o evince_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v false_a be_v require_v a_o real_a proof_n of_o truth_n positive_a which_o bellarmine_n want_v and_o the_o falsity_n may_v just_o be_v retort_v home_o to_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o prime_a man_n of_o his_o own_o part_n wise_a aquinas_n 3._o part_n quaest_a 42._o artic_a 4._o &_o 2._o thus_o when_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n have_v write_v what_o he_o show_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o we_o must_v in_o no_o wise_n say_v that_o christ_n himself_o do_v not_o write_v since_o his_o member_n write_v that_o which_o they_o know_v by_o the_o dictate_v of_o he_o their_o head_n for_o whatsoever_o he_o will_v have_v we_o read_v of_o his_o deed_n and_o word_n he_o command_v they_o as_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o write_v now_o let_v bellarmine_n say_v it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o write_v and_o thus_o much_o shall_v serve_v for_o the_o three_o question_n the_o four_o question_n whether_o the_o prophet_n evangelist_n and_o apostle_n be_v compel_v to_o write_v as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v luke_n 1.70_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o holy_a prophet_n per_fw-la loquendi_fw-la verbum_fw-la scriptionem_fw-la quoque_fw-la comprehendit_fw-la so_o what_o i_o propound_v of_o prophetical_a evangelicall_n and_o apostolical_a writing_n must_v also_o be_v understand_v of_o their_o speak_n or_o dictate_v whether_o they_o be_v compel_v to_o it_o compulsion_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n proper_a and_o absolute_a improper_a or_o mix_v proper_a when_o a_o man_n be_v force_v as_o we_o say_v in_o spite_n of_o his_o tooth_n against_o his_o will_n as_o some_o who_o have_v be_v draw_v to_o punishment_n thus_o be_v they_o not_o compel_v mix_v when_o a_o man_n do_v that_o which_o he_o will_v not_o do_v unless_o he_o fear_v a_o great_a loss_n as_o when_o a_o merchant_n or_o mariner_n cast_v their_o good_n into_o the_o sea_n to_o save_v their_o life_n which_o have_v in_o it_o part_v of_o the_o voluntary_a and_o part_n of_o the_o involuntarie_a and_o of_o this_o there_o may_v be_v some_o question_n for_o jonah_n flee_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n jon._n 1.3_o that_o be_v be_v unwilling_a to_o do_v the_o message_n moses_n again_o and_o again_o refuse_v to_o be_v god_n ambassador_n to_o pharaoh_n exod._n 3.11_o and_o to_o the_o israelite_n exod._n 4.1_o 10_o 13._o isaiah_n be_v also_o backward_o isa_n 6.5_o one_o answer_n serve_v for_o all_o they_o be_v at_o first_o fearful_a rather_o then_o unwilling_a but_o when_o they_o be_v confirm_v they_o ready_o and_o bold_o do_v their_o duty_n so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o shadow_n of_o compulsion_n that_o they_o offer_v their_o service_n when_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v who_o shall_v i_o send_v and_o who_o will_v go_v for_o we_o isa_n 6.8_o the_o prophet_n say_v here_o be_o i_o send_v i_o yea_o but_o they_o be_v impulsi_fw-la rapti_fw-la agitati_fw-la acti_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2._o pet._n 1.21_o i_o answer_v the_o word_n rather_o exclude_v voluntary_a and_o arbitrarie_a will-worship_n or_o self-will-service_n then_o include_v compulsion_n for_o all_o this_o be_v perform_v libero_fw-la motu_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la with_o the_o free_a motion_n of_o their_o will_n or_o as_o other_o take_v it_o salvo_n pleno_fw-la usu_fw-la liberi_fw-la arbitrii_fw-la without_o any_o impeachment_n of_o the_o freedom_n of_o their_o will_n vatum_fw-la will_n acti_fw-la à_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la loqunti_fw-la sunt_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la afflati_fw-la compositos_fw-la tamen_fw-la intellige_fw-la bos_fw-la motus_fw-la non_fw-la quales_fw-la fuere_fw-la profavorum_fw-la vatum_fw-la they_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v be_v inspire_v by_o god_n yet_o know_v that_o their_o motion_n and_o inspiration_n be_v settle_v and_o compose_v unlike_a to_o the_o profane_a heathen_a priest_n or_o prophet_n for_o they_o be_v wild_a senseless_a not_o know_v what_o they_o do_v or_o say_v say_v tremellius_n
rom._n 8.14_o many_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aguntur_fw-la be_v no_o more_o in_o effect_n then_o ducuntur_fw-la if_o it_o have_v be_v trahuntur_fw-la yet_o evem_fw-la yet_o herba_fw-la trahit_fw-la evem_fw-la meat_n draw_v a_o sheep_n to_o it_o say_v augustine_n and_o all_o be_v far_o from_o coaction_n and_o this_o may_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o aretius_n say_v on_o peter_n 2.1_o declinare_fw-la 2.1_o inviti_fw-la saepe_fw-la rapti_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o hunc_fw-la ordinem_fw-la moses_n elias_n &_o alii_fw-la qui_fw-la fuga_fw-la potiùs_fw-la hoc_fw-la munus_fw-la maluissent_fw-la declinare_fw-la moses_n elias_n and_o other_o who_o have_v rather_o have_v flee_v from_o these_o duty_n be_v oft_o unwilling_o draw_v to_o they_o it_o may_v be_v further_o object_v act._n 4.20_o we_o can_v but_o speak_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v fond_n be_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o ordinary_a gloss_n we_o can_v that_o be_v we_o will_v not._n by_o such_o a_o that_o be_v i_o will_v confound_v heaven_n with_o earth_n but_o i_o answer_v the_o word_n imply_v no_o violence_n the_o will_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o enforce_v if_o the_o will_n of_o man_n can_v be_v compel_v it_o be_v no_o long_o voluntas_fw-la a_o will_n but_o rather_o noluntas_fw-la no_o will_n a_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v posse_fw-la aut_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la fieri_fw-la to_o be_v or_o not_o to_o be_v make_v these_o way_n 1._o we_o can_v but_o speak_v that_o be_v non_fw-la possumus_fw-la convenienter_fw-la tacere_fw-la it_o be_v unreasonable_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v silent_a can_v the_o child_n of_o the_o bride-chamber_n mourn_v matth._n 9.15_o be_v a_o question_n without_o question_n for_o certain_o they_o can_v but_o while_o the_o bridegroom_n be_v with_o they_o they_o can_v not_o mourn_v that_o be_v it_o be_v no_o fit_a time_n for_o they_o to_o mourn_v likewise_o the_o apostle_n can_v hold_v their_o peace_n but_o than_o it_o become_v they_o not_o and_o therefore_o they_o say_v we_o can_v but_o speak_v 2._o non_fw-la possumus_fw-la licité_fw-fr we_o can_v lawful_o so_o lyra_n expound_v the_o word_n we_o can_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n say_v s._n paul_n 2._o cor._n 13.8_o that_o be_v we_o can_v lawful_o unlawful_o he_o may_v and_o so_o may_v any_o other_o so_o here_o if_o we_o do_v lawful_o and_o as_o we_o ought_v we_o can_v but_o speak_v 3._o we_o can_v but_o speak_v that_o be_v we_o be_v very_o prone_a and_o apt_a to_o speak_v mat._n 12.34_o how_o can_v you_o be_v evil_a speak_v good_a thing_n and_o how_o can_v the_o apostle_n be_v good_a but_o speak_v good_a thing_n their_o soul_n be_v fill_v with_o grace_n which_o boil_v forth_o into_o word_n their_o mouth_n can_v not_o choose_v but_o speak_v what_o their_o heart_n think_v my_o heart_n be_v hot_a within_o i_o while_o i_o be_v muse_v the_o fire_n burn_v then_o speak_v i_o with_o my_o tongue_n psal_n 39.3_o 4._o we_o can_v but_o speak_v that_o be_v we_o speak_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o as_o god_n teach_v we_o est_fw-la deus_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la agitante_fw-la calescimus_fw-la illo_fw-la when_o god_n on_o we_o do_v blow_v by_o he_o our_o heat_n do_v grow_v he_o move_v we_o &_o mota_fw-la faciliùs_fw-la commoventur_fw-la thing_n fix_v be_v not_o so_o soon_o move_v as_o thing_n in_o motion_n so_o the_o apostle_n be_v silent_a before_o but_o when_o the_o spirit_n enlighten_v their_o understanding_n and_o frame_v their_o word_n can_v they_o hold_v their_o tongue_n themselves_o answer_n we_o can_v but_o speak_v i_o sum_n it_o up_o all_o thus_o it_o be_v inconvenient_a not_o to_o speak_v it_o be_v sinful_a not_o to_o speak_v it_o proceed_v from_o the_o habit_n of_o grace_n and_o goodness_n that_o they_o be_v so_o prone_a to_o speak_v it_o proceed_v from_o the_o celestial_a suggestion_n actuate_a their_o heart_n and_o tongue_n therefore_o say_v they_o we_o can_v but_o speak_v and_o yet_o away_o with_o all_o coaction_n other_o may_v yet_o allege_v the_o 1._o cor._n 9.16_o necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o i_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o verse_n 17._o if_o i_o do_v this_o thing_n willing_o i_o have_v a_o reward_n but_o if_o against_o my_o will_n a_o dispensation_n be_v commit_v unto_o i_o unto_o the_o first_o part_n i_o answer_v the_o necessity_n be_v not_o of_o pressure_n angariation_n or_o force_n but_o of_o precept_n obstrictus_fw-la sum_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la i_o be_o command_v and_o bind_v to_o this_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o translate_o arabic_a for_o he_o be_v often_o command_v to_o preach_v in_o damascus_n act._n 22.15_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n act._n 22.21_o at_o antioch_n act._n 13.2_o habeo_fw-la 13.2_o si_fw-mi voluntatem_fw-la adjungo_fw-la necessitati_fw-la praecepti_fw-la mercedem_fw-la habeo_fw-la if_o unto_o the_o precept_n i_o add_v a_o willing-readie_a heart_n i_o have_v my_o reward_n say_v aquin._n but_o i_o will_v free_o sacrifice_v unto_o the_o lord_n say_v david_n psal_n 54.6_o and_o s._n paul_n will_v preach_v rather_o for_o love_n than_o necessity_n the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o word_n against_o my_o will_n evince_v not_o compulsion_n but_o backwardness_n slowness_n and_o ill_a end_n if_o i_o preach_v willing_o that_o be_v for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n of_o myself_o of_o my_o brethren_n soul_n for_o god_n honour_n and_o glory_n and_o at_o his_o command_n i_o have_v my_o reward_n but_o if_o against_o my_o will_n that_o be_v unwilling_o or_o in_o a_o unwilling_a manner_n praedico_fw-la manner_n si_fw-mi solo_fw-la timore_fw-la servili_fw-la praedico_fw-la if_o for_o only_o servile_a fear_n i_o preach_v say_v aquinas_n if_o for_o fear_n of_o woe_n denounce_v against_o i_o if_o for_o my_o private_a end_n of_o fame_n or_o gain_v yet_o even_o to_o such_o a_o mercenary_a be_v the_o dispensation_n commit_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v oppose_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n against_o my_o will_n be_v not_o so_o proper_o expound_v though_o it_o run_v so_o in_o our_o translation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v with_o a_o good_a will_n as_o coverdale_n well_o translate_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v a_o thing_n do_v proprio_fw-la motu_fw-la therefore_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v with_o a_o ill_a will_n grudge_o mercenary_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v non_fw-la volens_fw-la sluggish_o drawling_o formal_o for_o fashion_n sake_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o answer_n with_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o arabic_a and_o syriack_n translatour_n etc._n translatour_n si_fw-mi facere_fw-la hoc_fw-la ex_fw-la proposito_fw-la mentis_fw-la meae_fw-la voluntate_fw-la meâ_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la merces_fw-la si_fw-la autem_fw-la cùm_fw-la facere_fw-la ingratum_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o i_o do_v this_o purposely_o with_o a_o full_a will_n i_o have_v my_o reward_n if_o when_o i_o do_v it_o it_o be_v harsh_a unpleasant_a and_o sour_a etc._n etc._n say_v arab_n meam_fw-la arab_n si_fw-mi voluntate_fw-la meâ_fw-la si_fw-la praeter_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la meam_fw-la if_o with_o my_o will_n if_o beside_o my_o will_n say_v syrus_n none_o of_o this_o taste_v of_o coaction_n there_o yet_o arise_v up_o another_o objection_n the_o same_o apostle_n say_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n constrain_v we_o 2._o cor._n 5.14_o i_o answer_v the_o word_n be_v diverse_o expound_v urget_fw-la nos_fw-la urge_v we_o say_v the_o vulgat_fw-la cohibet_fw-la nos_fw-la restrain_v we_o say_v montanus_n continet_fw-la nos_fw-la contain_v we_o say_v oecumenius_n incendit_fw-la nos_fw-la amore_fw-la set_v we_o on_o fire_n with_o love_n say_v theodoret_n charitas_fw-la christi_fw-la constringit_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la sententia_fw-la the_o love_n of_o christ_n bind_v we_o fast_o in_o this_o opinion_n say_v arab_n such_o a_o constraint_n as_o will_v not_o be_v free_a such_o a_o bond_n or_o knot_n as_o will_v not_o be_v untie_v such_o a_o constraint_n as_o when_o a_o man_n be_v command_v to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o will_v do_v without_o command_n when_o precept_n be_v join_v to_o voluntarinesse_n when_o injunction_n be_v interpose_v between_o both_o precedent_n and_o subsequent_a willingness_n so_o much_o for_o the_o objection_n on_o the_o other_o side_n for_o the_o truth_n these_o argument_n stand_v forth_o luke_n 1.3_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o i_o to_o write_v unto_o thou_o say_v he_o this_o prove_v that_o the_o evangelist_n be_v not_o compel_v gal._n 6.11_o you_o see_v how_o large_a a_o letter_n i_o have_v write_v unto_o you_o with_o i_o own_o hand_n by_o which_o word_n s._n paul_n seek_v to_o ingratiate_v himself_o with_o they_o for_o that_o labour_n but_o it_o be_v neither_o matter_n of_o kindness_n on_o his_o part_n nor_o thankworthy_a on_o their_o part_n if_o he_o be_v compel_v no_o man_n dare_v write_v in_o a_o prince_n name_n without_o his_o command_n s._n john_n be_v speak_v to_o advise_v command_v